|
[Table of Contents] [Previous] |
Robert Jamieson, A. R. Fausset and David Brown Commentary Critical and Explanatory on the Whole Bible (1871) |
[1] [2]
[3] [4]
[5] [6]
[7] [8]
[9] [10]
[11] [12]
[13] [14]
[15] [16]
[17] [18]
[19] [20]
[21] [22]
INTRODUCTION
AUTHENTICITY.--The author calls himself John (Re 1:1, 4, 9; 2:8). JUSTIN MARTYR [Dialogue with Trypho, p. 308] (A.D. 139-161) quotes from the Apocalypse, as John the apostle's work, the prophecy of the millennium of the saints, to be followed by the general resurrection and judgment. This testimony of JUSTIN is referred to also by EUSEBIUS [Ecclesiastical History, 4.18]. JUSTIN MARTYR, in the early part of the second century, held his controversy with TRYPHO, a learned Jew, at Ephesus, where John had been living thirty or thirty-five years before: he says that "the Revelation had been given to John, one of the twelve apostles of Christ." MELITO, bishop of Sardis (about A.D. 171), one of the seven churches addressed, a successor, therefore, of one of the seven angels, is said by EUSEBIUS [Ecclesiastical History, 4.26] to have written treatises on the Apocalypse of John. The testimony of the bishop of Sardis is the more impartial, as Sardis is one of the churches severely reproved (Re 3:1). So also THEOPHILUS OF ANTIOCH (about A.D. 180), according to EUSEBIUS [Ecclesiastical History, 4.26], quoted testimonies from the Apocalypse of John. EUSEBIUS says the same of Apollonius, who lived in Asia Minor in the end of the second century. IRENÆUS (about A.D. 180), a hearer of POLYCARP, the disciple of John, and supposed by ARCHBISHOP USHER to be the angel of the Church of Smyrna, is most decided again and again in quoting the Apocalypse as the work of the apostle John [Against Heresies, 4.20.11; 4.21.3; 4.30.4; 5.36.1; 5.30.3; 5.35.2]. In [5.30.1], alluding to the mystical number of the beast, six hundred sixty-six (Re 13:18), found in all old copies, he says, "We do not hazard a confident theory as to the name of Antichrist; for if it had been necessary that his name should be proclaimed openly at the present time, it would have been declared by him who saw the apocalyptic vision; for it was seen at no long time back, but almost in our generation, towards the end of Domitian's reign." In his work Against Heresies, published ten years after Polycarp's martyrdom, he quotes the Apocalypse twenty times, and makes long extracts from it, as inspired Scripture. These testimonies of persons contemporary with John's immediate successors, and more or less connected with the region of the seven churches to which Revelation is addressed, are most convincing. TERTULLIAN, of North Africa (about A.D. 220), [Against Marcion, 3.14], quotes the apostle John's descriptions in the Apocalypse of the sword proceeding out of the Lord's mouth (Re 19:15), and of the heavenly city (Re 21:1-27). Compare On the Resurrection of the Flesh [27]; A Treatise on the Soul, [8, 9, &c.]; The Prescription Against Heretics, [33]. The MURATORI fragment of the canon (about A.D. 200) refers to John the apostle writing to the seven churches. HIPPOLYTUS, bishop of Ostia, near Rome (about A.D. 240) [On Antichrist, p. 67], quotes Re 17:1-18, as the writing of John the apostle. Among HIPPOLYTUS' works, there is specified in the catalogue on his statue, a treatise "on the Apocalypse and Gospel according to John." CLEMENT OF ALEXANDRIA (about A.D. 200) [Miscellanies, 6.13], alludes to the twenty-four seats on which the elders sit as mentioned by John in the Apocalypse (Re 4:5); also, [Who Is the Rich Man Who Shall Be Saved? 42], he mentions John's return from Patmos to Ephesus on the death of the Roman tyrant. ORIGEN (about A.D. 233), [Commentary on Matthew, in EUSEBIUS Ecclesiastical History, 6.25], mentions John as the author of the Apocalypse, without expressing any doubts as to its authenticity; also, in Commentary on Matthew, [16.6], he quotes Re 1:9, and says, "John seems to have beheld the Apocalypse in the island of Patmos." VICTORINUS, bishop of Pettau in Pannonia, who suffered martyrdom under Diocletian in A.D. 303, wrote the earliest extant commentary on the Apocalypse. Though the Old Syriac Peschito version does not contain the Apocalypse, yet EPHREM THE SYRIAN (about A.D. 378) frequently quotes the Apocalypse as canonical, and ascribes it to John.
Its canonicity and inspiration (according to a scholium of ANDREAS OF CAPPADOCIA) are attested by PAPIAS, a hearer of John, and associate of POLYCARP. PAPIAS was bishop of Hierapolis, near Laodicea, one of the seven churches. WORDSWORTH conjectures that a feeling of shame, on account of the rebukes of Laodicea in Revelation, may have operated on the Council of Laodicea, so as to omit Revelation from its list of books to be read publicly (?). The Epistle of the churches of Lyons and Vienne to the churches of Asia and Phrygia (in EUSEBIUS, [Ecclesiastical History, 5.1-3]), in the persecution under Marcus Aurelius (A.D. 77) quotes Re 1:5; 3:14; 14:4; 22:11, as Scripture. CYPRIAN (about A.D. 250) also, in Epistle 13, quotes Re 2:5 as Scripture; and in Epistle 25 he quotes Re 3:21, as of the same authority as the Gospel. (For other instances, see ALFORD'S Prolegomena, from whom mainly this summary of evidence has been derived). ATHANASIUS, in his Festival Epistle, enumerates the Apocalypse among the canonical Scriptures, to which none must add, and from which none must take away. JEROME [Epistle to Paulinus] includes in the canon the Apocalypse, adding, "It has as many mysteries as words. All praise falls short of its merits. In each of its words lie hid manifold senses." Thus an unbroken chain of testimony down from the apostolic period confirms its canonicity and authenticity.
The ALOGI [EPIPHANIUS, Heresies, 51] and CAIUS the Roman presbyter [EUSEBIUS, Ecclesiastical History, 3.28], towards the end of the second and beginning of the third century, rejected John's Apocalypse on mere captious grounds. CAIUS, according to JEROME [On Illustrious Men], about A.D. 210, attributed it to Cerinthus, on the ground of its supporting the millennial reign on earth. DIONYSIUS OF ALEXANDRIA mentions many before his time who rejected it because of its obscurity and because it seemed to support Cerinthus' dogma of an earthly and carnal kingdom; whence they attributed it to Cerinthus. This DIONYSIUS, scholar of ORIGEN, and bishop of Alexandria (A.D. 247), admits its inspiration (in EUSEBIUS [Ecclesiastical History, 7.10]), but attributes it to some John distinct from John the apostle, on the ground of its difference of style and character, as compared with John's Gospel and Epistle, as also because the name John is several times mentioned in the Apocalypse, which is always kept back in both the Gospel and Epistle; moreover, neither does the Epistle make any allusion to the Apocalypse, nor the Apocalypse to the Epistle; and the style is not pure Greek, but abounds in barbarisms and solecisms. EUSEBIUS wavers in opinion [Ecclesiastical History, 24.39] as to whether it is, or is not, to be ranked among the undoubtedly canonical Scriptures. His antipathy to the millennial doctrine would give an unconscious bias to his judgment on the Apocalypse. CYRIL OF JERUSALEM (A.D. 386), [Catechetical Lectures, 4.35,36], omits the Apocalypse in enumerating the New Testament Scriptures to be read privately as well as publicly. "Whatever is not read in the churches, that do not even read by thyself; the apostles and ancient bishops of the Church who transmitted them to us were far wiser than thou art." Hence, we see that, in his day, the Apocalypse was not read in the churches. Yet in Catechetical Lectures, 1.4 he quotes Re 2:7, 17; and in Catechetical Lectures, 1; 15.13 he draws the prophetical statement from Re 17:11, that the king who is to humble the three kings (Da 7:8, 20) is the eighth king. In Catechetical Lectures, 15 and 27, he similarly quotes from Re 12:3, 4. ALFORD conjectures that CYRIL had at some time changed his opinion, and that these references to the Apocalypse were slips of memory whereby he retained phraseology which belonged to his former, not his subsequent views. The sixtieth canon (if genuine) of the Laodicean Council in the middle of the fourth century omits the Apocalypse from the canonical books. The Eastern Church in part doubted, the Western Church, after the fifth century, universally recognized, the Apocalypse. CYRIL OF ALEXANDRIA [On Worship, 146], though implying the fact of some doubting its genuineness, himself undoubtedly accepts it as the work of St. John. ANDREAS OF CÆSAREA, in Cappadocia, recognized as genuine and canonical, and wrote the first entire and connected commentary on, the Apocalypse. The sources of doubt seem to have been, (1) the antagonism of many to the millennium, which is set forth in it; (2) its obscurity and symbolism having caused it not to be read in the churches, or to be taught to the young. But the most primitive tradition is unequivocal in its favor. In a word, the objective evidence is decidedly for it; the only arguments against it seem to have been subjective.
The personal notices of John in the Apocalypse occur Re 1:1, 4, 9; Re 22:8. Moreover, the writer's addresses to the churches of Proconsular Asia (Re 2:1) accord with the concurrent tradition, that after John's return from his exile in Patmos, at the death of Domitian, under Nerva, he resided for long, and died at last in Ephesus, in the time of Trajan [EUSEBIUS, Ecclesiastical History, 3.20,23]. If the Apocalypse were not the inspired work of John, purporting as it does to be an address from their superior to the seven churches of Proconsular Asia, it would have assuredly been rejected in that region; whereas the earliest testimonies in those churches are all in its favor. One person alone was entitled to use language of authority such as is addressed to the seven angels of the churches--namely, John, as the last surviving apostle and superintendent of all the churches. Also, it accords with John's manner to assert the accuracy of his testimony both at the beginning and end of his book (compare Re 1:2, 3, and 22:8, with Joh 1:14; 21:24; 1Jo 1:1, 2). Again, it accords with the view of the writer being an inspired apostle that he addresses the angels or presidents of the several churches in the tone of a superior addressing inferiors. Also, he commends the Church of Ephesus for trying and convicting "them which say they are apostles, and are not," by which he implies his own undoubted claim to apostolic inspiration (Re 2:2), as declaring in the seven epistles Christ's will revealed through him.
As to the difference of style, as compared with the Gospel and Epistle, the difference of subject in part accounts for it, the visions of the seer, transported as he was above the region of sense, appropriately taking a form of expression abrupt, and unbound by the grammatical laws which governed his writings of a calmer and more deliberate character. Moreover, as being a Galilean Hebrew, John, in writing a Revelation akin to the Old Testament prophecies, naturally reverted to their Hebraistic style. ALFORD notices, among the features of resemblance between the styles of the Apocalypse and John's Gospel and Epistle: (1) the characteristic appellation of our Lord, peculiar to John exclusively, "the Word of God" (Re 19:13; compare Joh 1:1; 1Jo 1:1). (2) the phrase, "he that overcometh" (Re 2:7, 11, 17; 3:5, 12, 21; 12:11; 15:2; 17:14; 21:7; compare Joh 16:33 1Jo 2:13, 14; 4:4; 5:4, 5). (3) The Greek term (alethinos) for "true," as opposed to that which is shadowy and unreal (Re 3:7, 14; 6:10; 15:3; 16:7; 19:2, 9, 11; 21:5; 22:6). This term, found only once in Luke (Lu 16:11), four times in Paul (1Th 1:9; Heb 8:2; 9:24; 10:22), is found nine times in John's Gospel (Joh 1:9; 4:23, 37; 6:32; 7:28; 8:16; 15:1 Joh 17:3; 19:3, 5), twice in John's First Epistle (1Jo 2:8; 5:20), and ten times in Revelation (Re 3:7, 14; 6:10; 15:3; 16:7; 19:2, 9, 11; 21:5 Re 22:6). (4) The Greek diminutive for "Lamb" (arnion, literally, "lambkin") occurs twenty-nine times in the Apocalypse, and the only other place where it occurs is Joh 21:15. In John's writings alone is Christ called directly "the Lamb" (Joh 1:29, 36). In 1Pe 1:19, He is called "as a lamb without blemish," in allusion to Isa 53:7. So the use of "witness," or "testimony" (Re 1:2, 9; 6:9; 11:7, &c.; compare Joh 1:7, 8, 15, 19, 32; 1Jo 1:2; 4:14; 5:6-11). "Keep the word," or "commandments" (Re 3:8, 10; 12:17; compare Joh 8:51, 55; 14:15). The assertion of the same thing positively and negatively (Re 2:2, 6, 8, 13; 3:8, 17, 18; compare Joh 1:3, 6, 7, 20; 1Jo 2:27, 28). Compare also 1Jo 2:20, 27 with Re 3:18, as to the spiritual anointing. The seeming solecisms of style are attributable to that,inspired elevation which is above mere grammatical rules, and are designed to arrest the reader's attention by the peculiarity of the phrase, so as to pause and search into some deep truth lying beneath. The vivid earnestness of the inspired writer, handling a subject so transcending all others, raises him above all servile adherence to ordinary rules, so that at times he abruptly passes from one grammatical construction to another, as he graphically sets the thing described before the eye of the reader. This is not due to ignorance of grammar, for he "has displayed a knowledge of grammatical rules in other much more difficult constructions" [WINER]. The connection of thought is more attended to than mere grammatical connection. Another consideration to be taken into account is that two-fifths of the whole being the recorded language of others, he moulds his style accordingly. Compare TREGELLES' Introduction to Revelation from Heathen Authorities.
TREGELLES well says [New Testament Historic Evidence], "There is no book of the New Testament for which we have such clear, ample, and numerous testimonies in the second century as we have in favor of the Apocalypse. The more closely the witnesses were connected with the apostle John (as was the case with IRENÆUS), the more explicit is their testimony. That doubts should prevail in after ages must have originated either in ignorance of the earlier testimony, or else from some supposed intuition of what an apostle ought to have written. The objections on the ground of internal style can weigh nothing against the actual evidence. It is in vain to argue, a priori, that John could not have written this book when we have the evidence of several competent witnesses that he did write it."
RELATION OF THE APOCALYPSE TO THE REST OF THE CANON.--GREGORY OF NYSSA [tom. 3, p. 601], calls Revelation "the last book of grace." It completes the volume of inspiration, so that we are to look for no further revelation till Christ Himself shall come. Appropriately the last book completing the canon was written by John, the last survivor of the apostles. The New Testament is composed of the historical books, the Gospels and Acts, the doctrinal Epistles, and the one prophetical book, Revelation. The same apostle wrote the last of the Gospels, and probably the last of the Epistles, and the only prophetical book of the New Testament. All the books of the New Testament had been written, and were read in the Church assemblies, some years before John's death. His life was providentially prolonged that he might give the final attestation to Scripture. About the year A.D. 100, the bishops of Asia (the angels of the seven churches) came to John at EPHESUS, bringing him copies of the three Gospels, Matthew, Mark, and Luke, and desired of him a statement of his apostolical judgment concerning them; whereupon he pronounced them authentic, genuine, and inspired, and at their request added his own Gospel to complete the fourfold aspect of the Gospel of Christ (compare MURATORI [Fragment on the Canon of Scripture]; EUSEBIUS [Ecclesiastical History, 3.24]; JEROME [Commentary on Matthew]; VICTORINUS on the Apocalypse; THEODORET [Ecclesiastical History, 39]). A Greek divine, quoted in ALLATIUS, calls Revelation "the seal of the whole Bible." The canon would be incomplete without Revelation. Scripture is a complete whole, its component books, written in a period ranging over one thousand five hundred years, being mutually connected. Unity of aim and spirit pervades the entire, so that the end is the necessary sequence of the middle, and the middle of the beginning. Genesis presents before us man and his bride in innocence and blessedness, followed by man's fall through Satan's subtlety, and man's consequent misery, his exclusion from Paradise and its tree of life and delightful rivers. Revelation presents, in reverse order, man first liable to sin and death, but afterwards made conqueror through the blood of the Lamb; the first Adam and Eve, represented by the second Adam, Christ, and the Church. His spotless bride, in Paradise, with free access to the tree of life and the crystal water of life that flows from the throne of God. As Genesis foretold the bruising of the serpent's head by the woman's seed (Ge 3:15), so Revelation declares the final accomplishment of that prediction (Re 19:1-20:15).
PLACE AND TIME OF WRITING.--The best authorities among the Fathers state that John was exiled under Domitian (IRENÆUS [Against Heresies, 5; 30]; CLEMENT OF ALEXANDRIA; EUSEBIUS [Ecclesiastical History, 3.20]). VICTORINUS says that he had to labor in the mines of Patmos. At Domitian's death, A.D. 95, he returned to Ephesus under the Emperor Nerva. Probably it was immediately after his return that he wrote, under divine inspiration, the account of the visions vouchsafed to him in Patmos (Re 1:2, 9). However, Re 10:4 seems to imply that he wrote the visions immediately after seeing them. Patmos is one of the Sporades. Its circumference is about thirty miles. "It was fitting that when forbidden to go beyond certain bounds of the earth's lands, he was permitted to penetrate the secrets of heaven" [BEDE, Explanation of the Apocalypse on chap. 1]. The following arguments favor an earlier date, namely, under Nero: (1) EUSEBIUS [Demonstration of the Gospel] unites in the same sentence John's banishment with the stoning of James and the beheading of Paul, which were under Nero. (2) CLEMENT OF ALEXANDRIA'S'S story of the robber reclaimed by John, after he had pursued, and with difficulty overtaken him, accords better with John then being a younger man than under Domitian, when he was one hundred years old. Arethas, in the sixth century, applies the sixth seal to the destruction of Jerusalem (A.D. 70), adding that the Apocalypse was written before that event. So the Syriac version states he was banished by Nero the Cæsar. Laodicea was overthrown by an earthquake (A.D. 60) but was immediately rebuilt, so that its being called "rich and increased with goods" is not incompatible with this book having been written under the Neronian persecution (A.D. 64). But the possible allusions to it in Heb 10:37; compare Re 1:4, 8; 4:8; 22:12; Heb 11:10; compare Re 21:14; Heb 12:22, 23; compare Re 14:1; Heb 8:1, 2; compare Re 11:19; 15:5; 21:3; Heb 4:12; compare Re 1:16; 2:12, 16; 19:13, 15; Heb 4:9; compare Re 20:1-15; also 1Pe 1:7, 13; 4:13, with Re 1:1; 1Pe 2:9 with Re 5:10; 2Ti 4:8, with Re 2:26, 27; 3:21; 11:18; Eph 6:12, with Re 12:7-12; Php 4:3, with Re 3:5; 13:8; 17:8; 20:12, 15; Col 1:18, with Re 1:5; 1Co 15:52, with Re 10:7; 11:15-18, make a date before the destruction of Laodicea possible. Cerinthus is stated to have died before John; as then he borrowed much in his Pseudo-Apocalypse from John's, it is likely the latter was at an earlier date than Domitian's reign. See TILLOCH'S Introduction to Apocalypse. But the Pauline benediction (Re 1:4) implies it was written after Paul's death under Nero.
TO WHAT READERS ADDRESSED.--The inscription states that it is addressed to the seven churches of Asia, that is, Proconsular Asia. John's reason for fixing on the number seven (for there were more than seven churches in the region meant by "Asia," for instance, Magnesia and Tralles) was doubtless because seven is the sacred number implying totality and universality: so it is implied that John, through the medium of the seven churches, addresses in the Spirit the Church of all places and ages. The Church in its various states of spiritual life or deadness, in all ages and places, is represented by the seven churches, and is addressed with words of consolation or warning accordingly. Smyrna and Philadelphia alone of the seven are honored with unmixed praise, as faithful in tribulation and rich in good works. Heresies of a decided kind had by this time arisen in the churches of Asia, and the love of many had waxed cold, while others had advanced to greater zeal, and one had sealed his testimony with his blood.
OBJECT.--It begins with admonitory addresses to the seven churches from the divine Son of man, whom John saw in vision, after a brief introduction which sets forth the main subject of the book, namely, to "show unto His servants things which must shortly come to pass" (the first through third chapters). From the fourth chapter to the end is mainly prophecy, with practical exhortations and consolations, however, interspersed, similar to those addressed to the seven churches (the representatives of the universal Church of every age), and so connecting the body of the book with its beginning, which therefore forms its appropriate introduction. Three schools of interpreters exist: (1) The Preterists, who hold that almost the whole has been fulfilled. (2) The Historical Interpreters, who hold that it comprises the history of the Church from John's time to the end of the world, the seals being chronologically succeeded, by the trumpets and the trumpets by the vials. (3) The Futurists, who consider almost the whole as yet future, and to be fulfilled immediately before Christ's second coming. The first theory was not held by any of the earliest Fathers, and is only held now by Rationalists, who limit John's vision to things within his own horizon, pagan Rome's persecutions of Christians, and its consequently anticipated destruction. The Futurist school is open to this great objection: it would leave the Church of Christ unprovided with prophetical guidance or support under her fiery trials for 1700 or 1800 years. Now God has said, "Surely He will do nothing, but He revealeth His secrets unto His servants the prophets" (Am 3:7). The Jews had a succession of prophets who guided them with the light of prophecy: what their prophets were to them, that the apocalyptic Scriptures have been, and are, to us.
ALFORD, following ISAAC WILLIAMS, draws attention to the parallel connection between the Apocalypse and Christ's discourse on the Mount of Olives, recorded in Mt 24:4-28. The seals plainly bring us down to the second coming of Christ, just as the trumpets also do (compare Re 6:12-17; 8:1, &c.; Re 11:15), and as the vials also do (Re 16:17): all three run parallel, and end in the same point. Certain "catchwords" (as WORDSWORTH calls them) connect the three series of symbols together. They do not succeed one to the other in historical and chronological sequence, but move side by side, the subsequent series filling up in detail the same picture which the preceding series had drawn in outline. So VICTORINUS (on Re 7:2), the earliest commentator on the Apocalypse, says, "The order of the things said is not to be regarded, since often the Holy Spirit, when He has run to the end of the last time, again returns to the same times, and supplies what He has less fully expressed." And PRIMASIUS [Commentary on the Apocalypse], "In the trumpets he gives a description by a pleasing repetition, as is his custom."
At the very beginning, John hastens, by anticipation (as was the tendency of all the prophets), to the grand consummation. Re 1:7, "Behold, He cometh with clouds," &c. Re 1:8, 17, "I am the beginning and the ending . . . the first and the last." So the seven epistles exhibit the same anticipation of the end. Re 3:12, "Him that overcometh, I will write upon Him the name of my God, and the name of the city of my God, which is new Jerusalem, which cometh down out of heaven"; compare at the close, Re 21:2. So also Re 2:28, "I will give him the morning star"; compare at the close, Re 22:16, "I am the bright and morning star."
Again, the earthquake that ensues on the opening of the sixth seal is one of the catchwords, that is, a link connecting chronologically this sixth seal with the sixth trumpet (Re 9:13; 11:13): compare also the seventh vial, Re 16:17, 18. The concomitants of the opening of the sixth seal, it is plain, in no full and exhaustive sense apply to any event, save the terrors which shall overwhelm the ungodly just before the coming of the Judge.
Again, the beast out of the bottomless pit (Re 11:7), between the sixth and seventh trumpets, connects this series with the section, twelfth through fourteenth chapters, concerning the Church and her adversaries.
Again, the sealing of the 144,000 under the sixth seal connects this seal with the section, the twelfth through fourteenth chapters.
Again, the loosing of the four winds by the four angels standing on the four corners of the earth, under the sixth seal, answers to the loosing of the four angels at the Euphrates, under the sixth trumpet.
Moreover, links occur in the Apocalypse connecting it with the Old Testament. For instance, the "mouth speaking great things" (Da 7:8 Re 13:5), connects the beast that blasphemes against God, and makes war against the saints, with the little horn (Da 7:21; Re 13:6, 7), or at last king, who, arising after the ten kings, shall speak against the Most High, and wear out the saints (Da 7:25); also, compare the "forty-two months" (Re 13:5), or "a thousand two hundred and threescore days" (Re 12:6), with the "time, times, and the dividing of time," of Da 7:25. Moreover, the "forty-two months," Re 11:2, answering to Re 12:6; 13:5, link together the period under the sixth trumpet to the section, Re 12:1-14:20.
AUBERLEN observes, "The history of salvation is mysteriously governed by holy numbers. They are the scaffolding of the organic edifice. They are not merely outward indications of time, but indications of nature and essence. Not only nature, but history, is based in numbers. Scripture and antiquity put numbers as the fundamental forms of things, where we put ideas." As number is the regulator of the relations and proportions of the natural world, so does it enter most frequently into the revelations of the Apocalypse, which sets forth the harmonies of the supernatural, the immediately Divine. Thus the most supernatural revelation leads us the farthest into the natural, as was to be expected, seeing the God of nature and of revelation is one. Seven is the number for perfection (compare Re 1:4; 4:5, the seven Spirits before the throne; also, Re 5:6, the Lamb's seven horns and seven eyes). Thus the seven churches represent the Church catholic in its totality. The seven seals (Re 5:1), the seven trumpets (Re 8:2), and the seven vials (Re 17:1), are severally a complete series each in itself, fulfilling perfectly the divine course of judgments. Three and a half implies a number opposed to the divine (seven), but broken in itself, and which, in the moment of its highest triumph, is overwhelmed by judgment and utter ruin. Four is the number of the world's extension; seven is the number of God's revelation in the world. In the four beasts of Daniel (Da 7:3) there is a recognition of some power above them, at the same time that there is a mimicry of the four cherubs of Ezekiel (Eze 10:9), the heavenly symbols of all creation in its due subjection to God (Re 4:6-8). So the four corners of the earth, the four winds, the four angels loosed from the Euphrates, and Jerusalem lying "foursquare" (Re 21:16), represent world-wide extension. The sevenfoldness of the Spirits on the part of God corresponds with the fourfold cherubim on the part of the created. John, seeing more deeply into the essentially God-opposed character of the world, presents to us, not the four beasts of Daniel, but the seven heads of the beast, whereby it arrogates to itself the sevenfold perfection of the Spirits of God; at the same time that, with characteristic self-contradiction, it has ten horns, the number peculiar to the world power. Its unjust usurpation of the sacred number seven is marked by the addition of an eighth to the seven heads, and also by the beast's own number, six hundred sixty-six, which in units, tens, and hundreds, verges upon, but falls short of, seven. The judgments on the world are complete in six: after the sixth seal and the sixth trumpet, there is a pause. When seven comes, there comes "the kingdom of our Lord and His Christ." Six is the number of the world given to judgment. Moreover, six is half of twelve, as three and a half is the half of seven. Twelve is the number of the Church: compare the twelve tribes of Israel, the twelve stars on the woman's head (Re 12:1), the twelve gates of new Jerusalem (Re 21:12, 21). Six thus symbolizes the world broken, and without solid foundation. Twice twelve is the number of the heavenly elders; twelve times twelve thousand the number of the sealed elect (Re 7:4): the tree of life yields twelve manner of fruits. Doubtless, besides this symbolic force, there is a special chronological meaning in the numbers; but as yet, though a commanded subject of investigation, they have received no solution which we can be sure is the true one. They are intended to stimulate reverent inquiry, not to gratify idle speculative curiosity; and when the event shall have been fulfilled, they will show the divine wisdom of God, who ordered all things in minutely harmonious relations, and left neither the times nor the ways haphazard.
The arguments for the year-day theory are as follows: Da 9:24, "Seventy weeks are determined upon," where the Hebrew may be seventy sevens; but MEDE observes, the Hebrew word means always seven of days, and never seven of years (Le 12:5; De 16:9, 10, 16). Again, the number of years' wandering of the Israelites was made to correspond to the number of days in which the spies searched the land, namely, forty: compare "each day for a year," Nu 14:33, 34. So in Eze 4:5, 6, "I have laid up on thee the years of their iniquity, according to the number of the days, three hundred and ninety days . . . forty days: I have appointed thee each day for a year." John, in Revelation itself, uses days in a sense which can hardly be literal. Re 2:10, "Ye shall have tribulation ten days": the persecution of ten years recorded by EUSEBIUS seems to correspond to it. In the year-day theory there is still quite enough of obscurity to exercise the patience and probation of faith, for we cannot say precisely when the 1260 years begin: so that this theory is quite compatible with Christ's words, "Of that day and hour knoweth no man" [Mt 24:36; Mr 13:32]. However, it is a difficulty in this theory that "a thousand years," in Re 20:6, 7, can hardly mean one thousand by three hundred sixty days, that is, three hundred sixty thousand years. The first resurrection there must be literal, even as Re 20:5 must be taken literally, "the rest of the dead lived not again until the thousand years were finished" (Re 20:5). To interpret the former spiritually would entail the need of interpreting the latter so, which would be most improbable; for it would imply that "the rest of the (spiritually) dead lived not (spiritually)" until the end of the thousand years, and then that they did come spiritually to life. 1Co 15:23, "they that are Christ's at His coming," confirms the literal view.
CHAPTER 1
Re 1:1-20. TITLE: SOURCE AND OBJECT OF THIS REVELATION: BLESSING ON THE READER AND KEEPER OF IT, AS THE TIME IS NEAR: INSCRIPTION TO THE SEVEN CHURCHES: APOSTOLIC GREETING: KEYNOTE, "BEHOLD HE COMETH" (Compare at the close, Re 22:20, "Surely I come quickly"): INTRODUCTORY VISION OF THE SON OF MAN IN GLORY, AMIDST THE SEVEN CANDLESTICKS, WITH SEVEN STARS IN HIS RIGHT HAND.
1. Revelation--an apocalypse or unveiling of those things
which had been veiled. A manifesto of the kingdom of Christ. The
travelling manual of the Church for the Gentile Christian times. Not a
detailed history of the future, but a representation of the
great epochs and chief powers in developing the kingdom of God in
relation to the world. The "Church-historical" view goes counter
to the great principle that Scripture interprets itself. Revelation is
to teach us to understand the times, not the times to interpret to us
the Apocalypse, although it is in the nature of the case that a reflex
influence is exerted here and is understood by the prudent
[AUBERLEN]. The book is in a series of parallel
groups, not in chronological succession. Still there is an organic
historical development of the kingdom of God. In this book all the
other books of the Bible end and meet: in it is the consummation of all
previous prophecy. Daniel foretells as to Christ and the Roman
destruction of Jerusalem, and the last Antichrist. But John's
Revelation fills up the intermediate period, and describes the
millennium and final state beyond Antichrist. Daniel, as a godly
statesman, views the history of God's people in relation to the four
world kingdoms. John, as an apostle, views history from the
Christian Church aspect. The term Apocalypse is applied
to no Old Testament book. Daniel is the nearest approach to it; but
what Daniel was told to seal and shut up till the time of the
end, John, now that the time is at hand
(Re 1:3),
is directed to reveal.
of Jesus Christ--coming from Him. Jesus Christ, not John
the writer, is the Author of the Apocalypse. Christ taught many things
before His departure; but those which were unsuitable for announcement
at that time He brought together into the Apocalypse [BENGEL]. Compare His promise,
Joh 15:15,
"All things that I have heard of My Father, I have made known unto
you"; also,
Joh 16:13,
"The Spirit of truth will show you things to come." The Gospels
and Acts are the books, respectively, of His first advent, in the
flesh, and in the Spirit; the Epistles are the inspired comment on
them. The Apocalypse is the book of His second advent and the events
preliminary to it.
which God gave unto him--The Father reveals Himself and His will
in, and by, His Son.
to show--The word recurs in
Re 22:6:
so entirely have the parts of Revelation reference to one another. It
is its peculiar excellence that it comprises in a perfect compendium
future things, and these widely differing: things close at hand, far
off, and between the two; great and little; destroying and saving;
repeated from old prophecies and new; long and short, and these
interwoven with one another, opposed and mutually agreeing; mutually
involving and evolving one another; so that in no book more than in
this would the addition, or taking away, of a single word or clause
(Re 22:18, 19),
have the effect of marring the sense of the context and the comparison
of passages together [BENGEL].
his servants--not merely to "His servant John," but to
all His servants (compare
Re 22:3).
shortly--Greek, "speedily"; literally, "in," or "with
speed." Compare "the time is at hand,"
Re 1:3; 22:6,
"shortly";
Re 22:7,
"Behold, I come quickly." Not that the things prophesied were
according to man's computation near; but this word "shortly" implies a
corrective of our estimate of worldly events and periods. Though a
"thousand years"
(Re 20:1-15)
at least are included, the time is declared to be at hand.
Lu 18:8,
"speedily." The Israelite Church hastened eagerly to the predicted end,
which premature eagerness prophecy restrains (compare
Da 9:1-27).
The Gentile Church needs to be reminded of the transitoriness of the
world (which it is apt to make its home) and the nearness of Christ's
advent. On the one hand Revelation says, "the time is at hand"; on the
other, the succession of seals, &c., show that many intermediate events
must first elapse.
he sent--Jesus Christ sent.
by his angel--joined with "sent." The angel does not come
forward to "signify" things to John until
Re 17:1; 19:9, 10.
Previous to that John receives information from others. Jesus Christ
opens the Revelation,
Re 1:10, 11; 4:1;
in
Re 6:1
one of the four living creatures acts as his informant; in
Re 7:13,
one of the elders; in
Re 10:8, 9,
the Lord and His angel who stood on the sea and earth. Only at the end
(Re 17:1)
does the one angel stand by Him (compare
Da 8:16; 9:21;
Zec 1:19).
2. bare record of--"testified the word of God" in this book.
Where we would say "testifies," the ancients in epistolary
communications use the past tense. The word of God constitutes his
testimony;
Re 1:3,
"the words of this prophecy."
the testimony of Jesus--"the Spirit of prophecy"
(Re 19:10).
and of all things that, &c.--The oldest manuscripts omit "and."
Translate, "whatsoever things he saw," in apposition with "the word of
God and the testimony of Jesus Christ."
3. he that readeth, and they that hear--namely, the public reader in Church assemblies, and his hearers. In the first instance, he by whom John sent the book from Patmos to the seven churches, read it publicly: a usage most scriptural and profitable. A special blessing attends him who reads or hears the apocalyptic "prophecy" with a view to keeping the things therein (as there is but one article to "they that hear and keep those things," not two classes, but only one is meant: "they who not only hear, but also keep those things," Ro 2:13); even though he find not the key to its interpretation, he finds a stimulus to faith, hope, and patient waiting for Christ. Note: the term "prophecy" has relation to the human medium or prophet inspired, here John: "Revelation" to the Divine Being who reveals His will, here Jesus Christ. God gave the revelation to Jesus: He by His angel revealed it to John, who was to make it known to the Church.
4. John--the apostle. For none but he (supposing the writer an
honest man) would thus sign himself nakedly without addition. As sole
survivor and representative of the apostles and eye-witnesses of the
Lord, he needed no designation save his name, to be recognized by his
readers.
seven churches--not that there were not more churches in that
region, but the number seven is fixed on as representing
totality. These seven represent the universal Church of
all times and places. See TRENCH'S [Commentary
on the Epistles to the Seven Churches in Asia] interesting note,
Re 1:20,
on the number seven. It is the covenant number, the sign
of God's covenant relation to mankind, and especially to the Church.
Thus, the seventh day, sabbath
(Ge 2:3;
Eze 20:12).
Circumcision, the sign of the covenant, after seven days
(Ge 17:12).
Sacrifices
(Nu 23:1; 14:29;
2Ch 29:21).
Compare also God's acts typical of His covenant
(Jos 6:4, 15, 16;
2Ki 5:10).
The feasts ordered by sevens of time
(De 15:1; 16:9, 13, 15).
It is a combination of three, the divine number (thus the
Trinity: the thrice Holy,
Isa 6:3;
the blessing,
Nu 6:24-26),
and four the number of the organized world in its extension
(thus the four elements, the four seasons, the
four winds, the four corners or quarters of the earth,
the four living creatures, emblems of redeemed creaturely life,
Re 4:6;
Eze 1:5, 6,
with four faces and four wings each; the four
beasts and four metals, representing the four world empires,
Da 2:32, 33; 7:3;
the four-sided Gospel designed for all quarters of the world;
the sheet tied at four corners,
Ac 10:11;
the four horns, the sum of the world's forces against the Church,
Zec 1:18).
In the Apocalypse, where God's covenant with His Church comes to its
consummation, appropriately the number seven recurs still more
frequently than elsewhere in Scripture.
Asia--Proconsular, governed by a Roman proconsul: consisting of
Phrygia, Mysia, Caria, and Lydia: the kingdom which Attalus III had
bequeathed to Rome.
Grace . . . peace--Paul's apostolical greeting. In his
Pastoral Epistles he inserts "mercy" in addition: so
2Jo 3.
him which is . . . was . . . is to come--a
periphrasis for the incommunicable name JEHOVAH,
the self-existing One, unchangeable. In Greek the
indeclinability of the designation here implies His unchangeableness.
Perhaps the reason why "He which is to come" is used, instead of "He
that shall be," is because the grand theme of Revelation is the Lord's
coming
(Re 1:7).
Still it is THE FATHER as
distinguished from "Jesus Christ"
(Re 1:5)
who is here meant. But so one are the Father and Son that the
designation, "which is to come," more immediately applicable to Christ,
is used here of the Father.
the seven Spirits which are before his throne--The oldest
manuscripts omit "are."
before--literally, "in the presence of." The Holy Spirit in His
sevenfold (that is, perfect, complete, and universal) energy.
Corresponding to "the seven churches." One in His own essence,
manifold in His gracious influences. The seven eyes resting on
the stone laid by Jehovah
(Re 5:6).
Four is the number of the creature world (compare the fourfold
cherubim); seven the number of God's revelation in the
world.
5. the faithful witness--of the truth concerning Himself and His
mission as Prophet, Priest, and King Saviour. "He was the faithful
witness, because all things that He heard of the Father He
faithfully made known to His disciples. Also, because He taught the way
of God in truth, and cared not for man, nor regarded the persons of
men. Also, because the truth which He taught in words He confirmed by
miracles. Also, because the testimony to Himself on the part of the
Father He denied not even in death. Lastly, because He will give true
testimony of the works of good and bad at the day of judgment"
[RICHARD OF ST.
VICTOR in TRENCH]. The
nominative in Greek standing in apposition to the genitive,
"Jesus Christ," gives majestic prominence to "the faithful witness."
the first-begotten of the dead--
(Col 1:18).
Lazarus rose, to die again. Christ rose to die no more. The image is
not as if the grave was the womb of His resurrection-birth [ALFORD]; but as
Ac 13:33;
Ro 1:4,
treat Christ's resurrection as the epoch and event which
fulfilled the Scripture,
Ps 2:7,
"This day (at the resurrection) have I begotten Thee." It was
then that His divine Sonship as the God-man was manifested and openly
attested by the Father. So our resurrection and our manifested sonship,
or generation, are connected. Hence "regeneration" is used of the
resurrection-state at the restitution of all things
(Mt 19:28).
the prince--or Ruler. The kingship of the world which the
tempter offered to Jesus on condition of doing homage to him, and so
shunning the cross, He has obtained by the cross. "The kings of the
earth" conspired against the Lord's Anointed
(Ps 2:2):
these He shall break in pieces
(Ps 2:9).
Those who are wise in time and kiss the Son shall bring their
glory unto Him at His manifestation as King of kings, after He has
destroyed His foes.
Unto him that loved us--The oldest manuscripts read the present,
". . . loveth us." It is His ever-continuing
character, He loveth us, and ever shall love us. His love rests
evermore on His people.
washed us--The two oldest manuscripts read, "freed
(loosed as from a bond) us": so ANDREAS and
PRIMASIUS. One very old manuscript,
Vulgate, and Coptic read as English Version,
perhaps drawn from
Re 7:4.
"Loosed us in (virtue of) His blood," being the
harder reading to understand, is less likely to have come from the
transcribers. The reference is thus to Greek, "lutron," the
ransom paid for our release
(Mt 20:28).
In favor of English Version reading is the usage whereby the
priests, before putting on the holy garments and ministering,
washed themselves: so spiritually believers, as priests
unto God, must first be washed in Christ's blood from every
stain before they can serve God aright now, or hereafter minister as
dispensers of blessing to the subject nations in the millennial
kingdom, or minister before God in heaven.
6. And hath--rather as Greek, "And (He) hath."
made us kings--The oldest manuscripts read, "a kingdom." One
oldest manuscript reads the dative, "for us." Another reads "us,"
accusative: so Vulgate, Syriac, Coptic, and
ANDREAS. This seems preferable, "He made us (to
be) a kingdom." So
Ex 19:6,
"a kingdom of priests";
1Pe 2:9,
"a royal priesthood." The saints shall constitute peculiarly a
kingdom of God, and shall themselves be kings
(Re 5:10).
They shall share His King-Priest throne in the millennial kingdom. The
emphasis thus falls more on the kingdom than on priests:
whereas in English Version reading it is equally distributed
between both. This book lays prominent stress on the saints'
kingdom. They are kings because they are priests: the priesthood
is the continuous ground and legitimization of their kingship; they are
kings in relation to man, priests in relation to God, serving Him day
and night in His temple
(Re 7:15; 5:10).
The priest-kings shall rule, not in an external mechanical manner, but
simply in virtue of what they are, by the power of attraction and
conviction overcoming the heart [AUBERLEN].
priests--who have pre-eminently the privilege of near access to
the king. David's sons were priests (Hebrew),
2Sa 8:18.
The distinction of priests and people, nearer and more remote
from God, shall cease; all shall have nearest access to Him. All
persons and things shall be holy to the Lord.
God and his Father--There is but one article to both in the
Greek, therefore it means, "Unto Him who is at once God and His
Father."
glory and dominion--Greek, "the glory and the
might." The fuller threefold doxology occurs,
Re 4:9, 11;
fourfold,
Re 5:13;
Jude 25;
sevenfold,
Re 7:12;
1Ch 29:11.
Doxology occupies the prominent place above, which prayer does below.
If we thought of God's glory first (as in the Lord's Prayer),
and gave the secondary place to our needs, we should please God and
gain our petitions better than we do.
for ever and ever--Greek, "unto the ages."
7. with clouds--Greek, "the clouds," namely, of
heaven. "A cloud received Him out of their sight" at His ascension
(Ac 1:9).
His ascension corresponds to the manner of His coming again
(Ac 1:11).
Clouds are the symbols of wrath to sinners.
every eye--His coming shall therefore be a personal, visible
appearing.
shall see--It is because they do not now see Him, they
will not believe. Contrast
Joh 20:29.
they also--they in particular; "whosoever."
Primarily, at His pre-millennial advent the Jews, who shall
"look upon Him whom they have pierced," and mourn in repentance,
and say, "Blessed is He that cometh in the name of the Lord."
Secondarily, and here chiefly, at the general judgment all the
ungodly, not only those who actually pierced Him, but those who did so
by their sins, shall look with trembling upon Him. John is the only one
of the Evangelists who records the piercing of Christ's side.
This allusion identifies him as the author of the Apocalypse. The
reality of Christ's humanity and His death is proved by His having been
pierced; and the water and blood from His side were the
antitype to the Levitical waters of cleansing and blood offerings.
all kindreds . . . shall wail--all the unconverted at
the general judgment; and especially at His pre-millennial advent, the
Antichristian confederacy
(Zec 12:3-6, 9; 14:1-4;
Mt 24:30).
Greek, "all the tribes of the land," or "the
earth." See the limitation to "all,"
Re 13:8.
Even the godly while rejoicing in His love shall feel penitential
sorrow at their sins, which shall all be manifested at the general
judgment.
because of--Greek, "at," or "in regard to
Him."
Even so, Amen--Gods seal of His own word; to which corresponds
the believer's prayer,
Re 22:20.
The "even so" is Greek; "Amen" is Hebrew. To both
Gentiles and Jews His promises and threats are unchangeable.
8. Greek, "I am the Alpha and the Omega."
The first and last letters of the alphabet. God in Christ comprises all
that goes between, as well as the first and last.
the beginning and the ending--omitted in the oldest manuscripts,
though found in Vulgate and Coptic. Transcribers probably
inserted the clause from
Re 21:6.
In Christ, Genesis, the Alpha of the Old Testament, and Revelation, the
Omega of the New Testament, meet together: the last book presenting to
us man and God reconciled in Paradise, as the first book presented man
at the beginning innocent and in God's favor in Paradise. Accomplishing
finally what I begin. Always the same; before the dragon,
the beast, false prophet, and all foes. An anticipatory consolation to
the saints under the coming trials of the Church.
the Lord--The oldest manuscripts read "the Lord God."
Almighty--Hebrew, "Shaddai," and "Jehovah
Sabaoth," that is, "of hosts"; commanding all the hosts or powers
in heaven and earth, so able to overcome all His Church's foes. It
occurs often in Revelation, but nowhere else in the New Testament save
2Co 6:18,
a quotation from Isaiah.
9. I John--So "I Daniel"
(Da 7:28; 9:2; 10:2).
One of the many features of resemblance between the Old Testament and
the New Testament apocalyptic seers. No other Scripture writer uses the
phrase.
also--as well as being an apostle. The oldest manuscripts omit
"also." In his Gospel and Epistles he makes no mention of his
name, though describing himself as "the disciple whom Jesus
loved." Here, with similar humility, though naming himself, he does not
mention his apostleship.
companion--Greek, "fellow partaker in the tribulation."
Tribulation is the necessary precursor of the kingdom," therefore "the"
is prefixed. This must be borne with "patient endurance." The oldest
manuscripts omit "in the" before "kingdom." All three are inseparable:
the tribulation, kingdom and endurance.
patience--Translate, "endurance." "Persevering, enduring
continuance"
(Ac 14:22);
"the queen of the graces (virtues)" [CHRYSOSTOM].
of, &c.--The oldest manuscripts read "IN
Jesus," or "Jesus Christ." It is IN Him that
believers have the right to the kingdom, and the spiritual
strength to enable them to endure patiently for it.
was--Greek, "came to be."
in . . . Patmos--now Patmo or Palmosa. See
Introduction
on this island, and John's exile to it under Domitian, from which he
was released under Nerva. Restricted to a small spot on earth, he is
permitted to penetrate the wide realms of heaven and its secrets. Thus
John drank of Christ's cup, and was baptized with His baptism
(Mt 20:22).
for--Greek, "for the sake of," "on account of"; so,
"because of the word of God and . . . testimony." Two
oldest manuscripts omit the second "for"; thus "the Word of God" and
"testimony of Jesus" are the more closely joined. Two oldest
manuscripts omit "Christ." The Apocalypse has been always appreciated
most by the Church in adversity. Thus the Asiatic Church from the
flourishing times of Constantine less estimated it. The African Church
being more exposed to the cross always made much of it [BENGEL].
10. I was--Greek, "I came to be"; "I became."
in the Spirit--in a state of ecstasy; the outer world being shut
out, and the inner and higher life or spirit being taken full
possession of by God's Spirit, so that an immediate connection with the
invisible world is established. While the prophet "speaks" in
the Spirit, the apocalyptic seer is in the Spirit in his whole
person. The spirit only (that which connects us with God and the
invisible world) is active, or rather recipient, in the apocalyptic
state. With Christ this being "in the Spirit" was not the exception,
but His continual state.
on the Lord's day--Though forcibly detained from Church
communion with the brethren in the sanctuary on the Lord's day, the
weekly commemoration of the resurrection, John was holding spiritual
communion with them. This is the earliest mention of the term,
"the Lord's day." But the consecration of the day to worship,
almsgiving, and the Lord's Supper, is implied in
Ac 20:7;
1Co 16:2;
compare
Joh 20:19-26.
The name corresponds to "the Lord's Supper,"
1Co 11:20.
IGNATIUS seems to allude to "the Lord's day"
[Epistle to the Magnesians, 9], and IRENÆUS [Quæst ad Orthod., 115] (in
JUSTIN MARTYR).
JUSTIN MARTYR
[Apology, 2.98], &c., "On Sunday we all hold our joint meeting;
for the first day is that on which God, having removed darkness and
chaos, made the world, and Jesus Christ our Saviour rose from the dead.
On the day before Saturday they crucified Him; and on the day after
Saturday, which is Sunday, having appeared to His apostles and
disciples, He taught these things." To the Lord's day PLINY doubtless refers [Epistles, Book X., p. 97],
"The Christians on a fixed day before dawn meet and sing a hymn
to Christ as God," &c. TERTULLIAN [The
Chaplet, 3], "On the Lord's day we deem it wrong to fast." MELITO, bishop of Sardis (second century), wrote a book
on the Lord's day [EUSEBIUS 4.26]. Also,
DIONYSIUS OF CORINTH, in
EUSEBIUS [Ecclesiastical History, 4.23,8].
CLEMENT OF ALEXANDRIA
[Miscellanies, 5. and 7.12]; ORIGEN
[Against Celsus, 8. 22]. The theory that the day of Christ's
second coming is meant, is untenable. "The day of the Lord" is
different in the Greek from "the Lord's (an adjective) day,"
which latter in the ancient Church always designates our Sunday, though
it is not impossible that the two shall coincide (at least in some
parts of the earth), whence a tradition is mentioned in JEROME [Commentary on Matthew, 25], that the
Lord's coming was expected especially on the Paschal Lord's day. The
visions of the Apocalypse, the seals, trumpets, and vials, &c., are
grouped in sevens, and naturally begin on the first day of the
seven, the birthday of the Church, whose future they set forth
[WORDSWORTH].
great voice--summoning solemn attention; Greek order, "I
heard a voice behind me great (loud) as (that) of a trumpet." The
trumpet summoned to religious feasts, and accompanies God's revelations
of Himself.
11. I am Alpha and Omega, the first and the last; and--The
oldest manuscripts, omit all this clause.
write in a book--To this book, having such an origin, and
to the other books of Holy Scripture, who is there that gives the
weight which their importance demands, preferring them to the many
books of the world? [BENGEL].
seven churches--As there were many other churches in Proconsular
Asia (for example, Miletus, Magnesia, Tralles), besides the seven
specified, doubtless the number seven is fixed upon because of
its mystical signification, expressing totality and
universality. The words, "which are in Asia" are rejected by the
oldest manuscripts, A, B, C, CYPRIAN,
Vulgate, and Syriac; Coptic alone supports them of old
authorities. These seven are representative churches; and, as a complex
whole, ideally complete, embody the chief spiritual characteristics of
the Church, whether as faithful or unfaithful, in all ages. The
churches selected are not taken at random, but have a many-sided
completeness. Thus, on one side we have Smyrna, a Church exposed to
persecutions unto death; on the other Sardis, having a high name
for spiritual life and yet dead. Again, Laodicea, in its own
estimate rich and having need of nothing, with ample
talents, yet lukewarm in Christ's cause; on the other hand,
Philadelphia, with but a little strength, yet keeping
Christ's word and having an open door of usefulness set
before it by Christ Himself. Again, Ephesus, intolerant of
evil and of false apostles, yet having left its first
love; on the other hand, Thyatira, abounding in works, love,
service, and faith, yet suffering the false
prophetess to seduce many. In another aspect, Ephesus in
conflict with false freedom, that is fleshly licentiousness (the
Nicolaitanes); so also Pergamos in conflict with Balaam-like tempters
to fornication and idol-meats; and on the other side,
Philadelphia in conflict with the Jewish synagogue, that is, legal
bondage. Finally, Sardis and Laodicea without any active opposition to
call forth their spiritual energies; a dangerous position, considering
man's natural indolence. In the historic scheme of interpretation,
which seems fanciful, Ephesus (meaning "the beloved" or "desired"
[STIER]) represents the waning period of the
apostolic age. Smyrna ("myrrh"), bitter suffering, yet sweet and costly
perfume, the martyr period of the Decian and Diocletian age. Pergamos
(a "castle" or "tower"), the Church possessing earthly power and
decreasing spirituality from Constantine's time until the seventh
century. Thyatira ("unwearied about sacrifices"), the Papal Church in
the first half of the Middle Ages; like "Jezebel," keen about its
so-called sacrifice of the mass, and slaying the prophets and
witnesses of God. Sardis, from the close of the twelfth century to the
Reformation. Philadelphia ("brotherly love"), the first century of the
Reformation. Laodicea, the Reformed Church after its first zeal had
become lukewarm.
12. see the voice--that is, ascertain whence the
voice came; to see who was it from whom the voice
proceeded.
that--Greek, "of what kind it was which." The
voice is that of God the Father, as at Christ's baptism and
transfiguration, so here in presenting Christ as our High Priest.
spake--The oldest manuscripts, versions, and Fathers read, "was
speaking."
being--"having turned."
seven . . . candlesticks--"lamp-stands"
[KELLY]. The stand holding the lamp. In
Ex 25:31, 32,
the seven are united in ONE candlestick or
lamp-stand, that is, six arms and a central shaft; so
Zec 4:2, 11.
Here the seven are separate candlesticks, typifying, as that
one, the entire Church, but now no longer as the Jewish Church
(represented by the one sevenfold candlestick) restricted to one
outward unity and one place; the several churches are mutually
independent as to external ceremonies and government (provided all
things are done to edification, and schisms or needless separations are
avoided), yet one in the unity of the Spirit and the Headship of
Christ. The candlestick is not light, but the bearer of light, holding
it forth to give light around. The light is the Lord's, not the
Church's; from Him she receives it. She is to be a light-bearer to His
glory. The candlestick stood in the holy place, the type of the Church
on earth, as the holiest place was type of the Church in heaven. The
holy place's only light was derived from the candlestick, daylight
being excluded; so the Lord God is the Church's only light; hers is the
light of grace, not nature. "Golden" symbolizes at once the greatest
preciousness and sacredness; so that in the Zend
Avesta, "golden" is synonymous with heavenly or divine [TRENCH].
13. His glorified form as man could be recognized by John, who
had seen it at the Transfiguration.
in the midst--implying Christ's continual presence and ceaseless
activity in the midst of His people on earth. In
Re 4:1-3,
when He appears in heaven, His insignia undergo a corresponding
change yet even there the rainbow reminds us of His everlasting
covenant with them.
seven--omitted in two of the oldest manuscripts, but supported
by one.
Son of man--The form which John had seen enduring the agony of
Gethsemane, and the shame and anguish of Calvary, he now sees
glorified. His glory (as Son of man, not merely Son of
God) is the result of His humiliation as Son of man.
down to the foot--a mark of high rank. The garment and girdle
seem to be emblems of His priesthood. Compare
Ex 28:2, 4, 31;
Septuagint. Aaron's robe and girdle were "for glory and beauty,"
and combined the insignia of royalty and priesthood, the
characteristics of Christ's antitypical priesthood "after the order of
Melchisedec." His being in the midst of the candlesticks (only
seen in the temple), shows that it is as a king-priest He
is so attired. This priesthood He has exercised ever since His
ascension; and, therefore He here wears its emblems. As Aaron wore
these insignia when He came forth from the sanctuary to bless the
people
(Le 16:4, 23, 24,
the chetoneth, or holy linen coat), so when Christ shall come
again, He shall appear in the similar attire of "beauty and glory"
(Isa 4:2,
Margin). The angels are attired somewhat like their Lord
(Re 15:6).
The ordinary girding for one actively engaged, was at the loins;
but JOSEPHUS [Antiquities,3.7.2], expressly
tells us that the Levitical priests were girt higher up, about the
breasts or paps, appropriate to calm, majestic movement. The
girdle bracing the frame together, symbolizes collected powers.
Righteousness and faithfulness are Christ's girdle. The
high priest's girdle was only interwoven with gold, but Christ's is all
of gold; the antitype exceeds the type.
14.--Greek, "But," or "And."
like wool--Greek, "like white wool." The
color is the point of comparison; signifying purity and
glory. (So in
Isa 1:18).
Not age, for hoary hairs are the sign of decay.
eyes . . . as . . . flame--all-searching and
penetrating like fire: at the same time, also, implying
consuming indignation against sin, especially at His coming "in
flaming fire, taking vengeance" on all the ungodly, which is confirmed
as the meaning here, by
Re 19:11, 12.
15. fine brass--Greek, "chalcolibanus," derived by
some from two Greek words, "brass" and "frankincense"; derived
by BOCHART from Greek, "chalcos,"
"brass," and Hebrew, "libbeen," "to whiten"; hence,
"brass," which in the furnace has reached a white heat. Thus it
answers to "burnished (flashing, or glowing) brass,"
Eze 1:7;
Re 10:1,
"His feet as pillars of fire." Translate, "Glowing brass,
as if they had been made fiery (red-hot) in a furnace." The feet of the
priests were bare in ministering in the sanctuary. So our great High
Priest here.
voice as . . . many waters--
(Eze 43:2);
in
Da 10:6,
it is "like the voice of a multitude." As the Bridegroom's
voice, so the bride's,
Re 14:2; 19:6;
Eze 1:24,
the cherubim, or redeemed creation. His voice, however, is here
regarded in its terribleness to His foes. Contrast
So 2:8; 5:2,
with which compare
Re 3:20.
16. he had--Greek, "having." John takes up the
description from time to time, irrespective of the construction,
with separate strokes of the pencil [ALFORD].
in . . . right hand seven stars--
(Re 1:20;
Re 2:1; 3:1).
He holds them as a star-studded "crown of glory," or "royal diadem," in
His hand: so
Isa 62:3.
He is their Possessor and Upholder.
out of . . . mouth went--Greek, "going forth";
not wielded in the hand. His WORD is omnipotent in
executing His will in punishing sinners. It is the sword of His Spirit.
Reproof and punishment, rather than its converting winning power, is
the prominent point. Still, as He encourages the churches, as well as
threatens, the former quality of the Word is not excluded. Its
two edges (back and front) may allude to its double efficacy,
condemning some, converting others. TERTULLIAN
[Epistle against Judaizers], takes them of the Old and the
New Testaments. RICHARD OF
ST. VICTOR, "the Old
Testament cutting externally our carnal, the New Testament
internally, our spiritual sins."
sword--Greek, "romphaia," the Thracian long and
heavy broad sword: six times in Revelation, once only elsewhere in New
Testament, namely,
Lu 2:35.
sun . . . in his strength--in unclouded power. So
shall the righteous shine, reflecting the image of the Sun of
righteousness. TRENCH notices that this
description, sublime as a purely mental conception, would be
intolerable if we were to give it an outward form. With the Greeks,
æsthecial taste was the first consideration, to which all others
must give way. With the Hebrews, truth and the full representation
ideally of the religious reality were the paramount consideration, that
representation being designed not to be outwardly embodied, but to
remain a purely mental conception. This exalting of the essence above
the form marks their deeper religious earnestness.
17. So fallen is man that God's manifestation of His glorious
presence overwhelms him.
laid his right hand upon me--So the same Lord Jesus did at the
Transfiguration to the three prostrate disciples, of whom John was one,
saying, Be not afraid. The "touch" of His hand, as of old, imparted
strength.
unto me--omitted in the oldest manuscripts.
the first . . . the last--
(Isa 41:4; 44:6; 48:12).
From eternity, and enduring to eternity: "the First by creation, the
Last by retribution: the First, because before Me there was no God
formed; the Last, because after Me there shall be no other: the First,
because from Me are all things; the Last, because to Me all things
return" [RICHARD OF ST.
VICTOR].
18. Translate as Greek, "And THE
LIVING ONE": connected with
last sentence,
Re 1:17.
and was--Greek, "and (yet) I became."
alive for evermore--Greek, "living unto the ages of
ages": not merely "I live," but I have life, and am the source
of it to My people. "To Him belongs absolute being, as
contrasted with the relative being of the creature; others may
share, He only hath immortality: being in essence, not
by mere participation, immortal" [THEODORET in
TRENCH]. One oldest manuscript, with English
Version, reads Amen." Two others, and most of the oldest versions
and Fathers, omit it. His having passed through death as one of us, and
now living in the infinite plenitude of life, reassures His people,
since through Him death is the gate of resurrection to eternal life.
have . . . keys of hell--Greek, "Hades";
Hebrew, "Sheol." "Hell" in the sense, the place of
torment, answers to a different Greek word, namely,
Gehenna. I can release from the unseen world of spirits
and from DEATH whom I will. The oldest
manuscripts read by transposition, "Death and Hades," or Hell." It is
death (which came in by sin, robbing man of his immortal birthright,
Ro 5:12)
that peoples Hades, and therefore should stand first in order.
Keys are emblems of authority, opening and shutting at will "the
gates of Hades"
(Ps 9:13, 14;
Isa 38:10;
Mt 16:18).
19. The oldest manuscripts read, "Write therefore"
(inasmuch as I, "the First and Last," have the keys of death, and
vouchsafe to thee this vision for the comfort and warning of the
Church).
things which are--"the things which thou hast seen" are those
narrated in this chapter (compare
Re 1:11).
"The things which are" imply the present state of things in the
churches when John was writing, as represented in the second and third
chapters. "The things which shall be hereafter," the things
symbolically represented concerning the future history of the fourth
through twenty-second chapters. ALFORD
translates, "What things they signify"; but the
antithesis of the next clause forbids this, "the things which shall be
hereafter," Greek, "which are about to come to pass." The
plural (Greek) "are," instead of the usual Greek
construction singular, is owing to churches and
persons being meant by things" in the clause, "the things which
are."
20. in--Greek, "upon My right hand."
the mystery . . . candlesticks--in apposition to, and
explaining, "the things which thou hast seen," governed by "Write."
Mystery signifies the hidden truth, veiled under this symbol,
and now revealed; its correlative is revelation. Stars symbolize
lordship
(Nu 24:17;
compare
Da 12:3,
of faithful teachers;
Re 8:10; 12:4;
Jude 13).
angels--not as ALFORD, from
ORIGEN [Homily 13 on Luke, and Homily
20 on Numbers], the guardian angels of the churches, just as
individuals have their guardian angels. For how could heavenly angels
be charged with the delinquencies laid here to the charge of these
angels? Then, if a human angel be meant (as the Old Testament analogy
favors,
Hag 1:13,
"the Lord's Messenger in the Lord's message";
Mal 2:7; 3:1),
the bishop, or superintendent pastor, must be the angel. For
whereas there were many presbyters in each of the larger churches (as
for example, Ephesus, Smyrna, &c.), there was but one angel,
whom, moreover, the Chief Shepherd and Bishop of souls holds
responsible for the spiritual state of the Church under him. The term
angel, designating an office, is, in accordance with the
enigmatic symbolism of this book, transferred from the heavenly to the
earthly superior ministers of Jehovah; reminding them that, like the
heavenly angels above, they below should fulfil God's mission
zealously, promptly and efficiently. "Thy will be done on earth, as it
is in heaven!"
CHAPTER 2
Re 2:1-29. EPISTLES TO EPHESUS, SMYRNA, PERGAMOS, THYATIRA.
Each of the seven epistles in this and the third chapter, commences with, "I know thy works." Each contains a promise from Christ, "To him that overcometh." Each ends with, "He that hath an ear, let him hear what the Spirit saith unto the churches." The title of our Lord in each case accords with the nature of the address, and is mainly taken from the imagery of the vision, Re 1:12-16. Each address has a threat or a promise, and most of the addresses have both. Their order seems to be ecclesiastical, civil, and geographical: Ephesus first, as being the Asiatic metropolis (termed "the light of Asia," and "first city of Asia"), the nearest to Patmos, where John received the epistle to the seven churches, and also as being that Church with which John was especially connected; then the churches on the west coast of Asia; then those in the interior. Smyrna and Philadelphia alone receive unmixed praise. Sardis and Laodicea receive almost solely censure. In Ephesus, Pergamos, and Thyatira, there are some things to praise, others to condemn, the latter element preponderating in one case (Ephesus), the former in the two others (Pergamos and Thyatira). Thus the main characteristics of the different states of different churches, in all times and places, are portrayed, and they are suitably encouraged or warned.
1. Ephesus--famed for the temple of Diana, one of the seven
wonders of the world. For three years Paul labored there. He
subsequently ordained Timothy superintending overseer or bishop there:
probably his charge was but of a temporary nature. John, towards the
close of his life, took it as the center from which he superintended
the province.
holdeth--Greek, "holdeth fast," as in
Re 2:25;
Re 3:11;
compare
Joh 10:28, 29.
The title of Christ here as "holding fast the seven stars (from
Re 1:16:
only that, for having is substituted holding fast in His
grasp), and walking in the midst of the seven candlesticks," accords
with the beginning of His address to the seven churches
representing the universal Church. Walking expresses His
unwearied activity in the Church, guarding her from internal and
external evils, as the high priest moved to and fro in the
sanctuary.
2. I know thy works--expressing His omniscience. Not merely "thy
professions, desires, good resolutions"
(Re 14:13,
end).
thy labour--Two oldest manuscripts omit "thy"; one supports it.
The Greek means "labor unto weariness."
patience--persevering endurance.
bear--evil men are a burden which the Ephesian
Church regarded as intolerable. We are to "bear (the same
Greek,
Ga 6:2)
one another's burdens" in the case of weak brethren; but not to
bear false brethren.
tried--by experiment; not the Greek for "test," as
1Jo 4:1.
The apostolical churches had the miraculous gift of discerning
spirits. Compare
Ac 20:28-30,
wherein Paul presciently warned the Ephesian elders of the
coming false teachers, as also in writing to Timothy at Ephesus.
TERTULLIAN [On Baptism, 17], and
JEROME [On Illustrious Men, in Lucca 7],
record of John, that when a writing, professing to be a canonical
history of the acts of Paul, had been composed by a presbyter of
Ephesus, John convicted the author and condemned the work. So on one
occasion he would not remain under the same roof with Cerinthus the
heretic.
say they are apostles--probably Judaizers.
IGNATIUS [Epistle to the Ephesians, 6],
says subsequently, "Onesimus praises exceedingly your good discipline
that no heresy dwells among you"; and [Epistle to the Ephesians,
9], "Ye did not permit those having evil doctrine to sow their seed
among you, but closed your ears."
3. borne . . . patience--The oldest manuscripts
transpose these words. Then translate as Greek, "persevering
endurance . . . borne." "Thou hast borne" My reproach, but
"thou canst not bear the evil"
(Re 2:2).
A beautiful antithesis.
and . . . hast laboured, and hast not fainted--The two
oldest manuscripts and oldest versions read, "and . . . hast
not labored," omitting "and hast fainted." The difficulty which
transcribers by English Version reading tried to obviate, was
the seeming contradiction, "I know thy labor . . . and
thou hast not labored." But what is meant is, "Thou hast not
been wearied out with labor."
4. somewhat . . . because--Translate, "I have against
thee (this) that," &c. It is not a mere somewhat"; it is
everything. How characteristic of our gracious Lord, that He puts
foremost all He can find to approve, and only after this notes the
shortcomings!
left thy first love--to Christ. Compare
1Ti 5:12,
"cast off their first faith." See the Ephesians' first love,
Eph 1:15.
This epistle was written under Domitian, when thirty years had elapsed
since Paul had written his Epistle to them. Their warmth of love had
given place to a lifeless orthodoxy. Compare Paul's view of faith so
called without love,
1Co 13:2.
5. whence--from what a height.
do the first works--the works which flowed from thy
first love. Not merely "feel thy first feelings," but do works
flowing from the same principle as formerly, "faith which worketh by
love."
I will come--Greek, "I am coming" in special judgment on
thee.
quickly--omitted in two oldest manuscripts, Vulgate and
Coptic versions: supported by one oldest manuscript.
remove thy candlestick out of his place--I will take away the
Church from Ephesus and remove it elsewhere. "It is removal of the
candlestick, not extinction of the candle, which is threatened here;
judgment for some, but that very judgment the occasion of mercy for
others. So it has been. The seat of the Church has been changed, but
the Church itself survives. What the East has lost, the West has
gained. One who lately visited Ephesus found only three Christians
there, and these so ignorant as scarcely to have heard the names of St.
Paul or St. John" [TRENCH].
6. But--How graciously, after necessary censure, He returns to
praise for our consolation, and as an example to us, that we
would show, when we reprove, we have more pleasure in praising than in
fault-finding.
hatest the deeds--We should hate men's evil deeds, not
hate the men themselves.
Nicolaitanes--IRENÆUS [Against
Heresies, 1.26.3] and TERTULLIAN
[Prescription against Heretics, 46] make these followers of
Nicolas, one of the seven (honorably mentioned,
Ac 6:3, 5).
They (CLEMENT OF ALEXANDRIA
[Miscellanies, 2.20 3.4] and EPIPHANIUS
[Heresies, 25]) evidently confound the latter Gnostic
Nicolaitanes, or followers of one Nicolaos, with those of Revelation.
MICHAELIS' view is probable: Nicolaos
(conqueror of the people) is the Greek version of Balaam,
from Hebrew "Belang Am," "Destroyer of the people."
Revelation abounds in such duplicate Hebrew and Greek
names: as Apollyon, Abaddon: Devil, Satan: Yea (Greek,
"Nai"), Amen. The name, like other names, Egypt, Babylon, Sodom,
is symbolic. Compare
Re 2:14, 15,
which shows the true sense of Nicolaitanes; they are not a sect, but
professing Christians who, like Balaam of old. tried to introduce into
the Church a false freedom, that is, licentiousness; this was a
reaction in the opposite direction from Judaism, the first danger to
the Church combated in the council of Jerusalem, and by Paul in the
Epistle to Galatians. These symbolical Nicolaitanes, or followers of
Balaam, abused Paul's doctrine of the grace of God into a plea for
lasciviousness
(2Pe 2:15, 16, 19;
Jude 4, 11
who both describe the same sort of seducers as followers of
Balaam). The difficulty that they should appropriate a name
branded with infamy in Scripture is met by TRENCH:
The Antinomian Gnostics were so opposed to John as a Judaizing apostle
that they would assume as a name of chiefest honor one which John
branded with dishonor.
7. He that hath an ear--This clause precedes the promise in the
first three addresses, succeeds it in the last four. Thus the promises
are enclosed on both sides with the precept urging the deepest
attention as to the most momentous truths. Every man "hath an ear"
naturally, but he alone will be able to hear spiritually to whom God
has given "the hearing ear"; whose "ear God hath wakened" and "opened."
Compare "Faith, the ears of the soul" [CLEMENT OF
ALEXANDRIA].
the Spirit saith--What Christ saith, the Spirit
saith; so one are the Second and Third Persons.
unto the churches--not merely to the particular, but to the
universal Church.
overcometh--In John's Gospel
(Joh 16:33)
and First Epistle
(1Jo 2:13, 14; 5:4, 5)
an object follows, namely, "the world," "the wicked one." Here, where
the final issue is spoken of, the conqueror is named absolutely.
Paul uses a similar image
(1Co 9:24, 25;
2Ti 2:5;
but not the same as John's phrase, except
Ro 12:21).
will I give--as the Judge. The tree of life in Paradise, lost by
the fall, is restored by the Redeemer. Allusions to it occur in
Pr 3:18; 11:30; 13:12; 15:4,
and prophetically,
Re 22:2, 14;
Eze 47:12;
compare
Joh 6:51.
It is interesting to note how closely these introductory addresses are
linked to the body of Revelation. Thus, the tree of life here,
with
Re 22:1;
deliverance from the second death
(Re 2:11),
with
Re 20:14; 21:8;
the new name
(Re 2:17),
with
Re 14:1;
power over the nations, with
Re 20:4;
the morning star
(Re 2:28),
with
Re 22:16;
the white raiment
(Re 3:5),
with
Re 4:4; 16:15;
the name in the book of life
(Re 3:5),
with
Re 13:8; 20:15;
the new Jerusalem and its citizenship
(Re 3:12),
with
Re 21:10.
give . . . tree of life--The thing promised
corresponds to the kind of faithfulness manifested. They who refrain
from Nicolaitane indulgences
(Re 2:6)
and idol-meats
(Re 2:14, 15),
shall eat of meat infinitely superior, namely, the fruit of the tree of
life, and the hidden manna
(Re 2:17).
in the midst of the paradise--The oldest manuscripts omit "the
midst of." In
Ge 2:9
these words are appropriate, for there were other trees in the
garden, but not in the midst of it. Here the tree of life
is simply in the paradise, for no other tree is mentioned in it;
in
Re 22:2
the tree of life is "in the midst of the street of Jerusalem";
from this the clause was inserted here. Paradise (a Persian, or
else Semitic word), originally used of any garden of delight; then
specially of Eden; then the temporary abode of separate souls in bliss;
then "the Paradise of God," the third heaven, the immediate
presence of God.
of God--
(Eze 28:13).
One oldest manuscript, with Vulgate, Syriac, and Coptic,
and CYPRIAN, read, "MY God,"
as in
Re 3:12.
So Christ calls God, "My God and your God"
(Joh 20:17;
compare
Eph 1:17).
God is our God, in virtue of being peculiarly Christ's
God. The main bliss of Paradise is that it is the Paradise of
God; God Himself dwelling there
(Re 21:3).
8. Smyrna--in Ionia, a little to the north of Ephesus. POLYCARP, martyred in A.D. 168,
eighty-six years after his conversion, was bishop, and probably "the
angel of the Church in Smyrna" meant here. The allusions to
persecutions and faithfulness unto death accord with this view.
IGNATIUS [The Martyrdom of Ignatius 3], on
his way to martyrdom in Rome, wrote to POLYCARP,
then (A.D. 108) bishop of Smyrna; if his bishopric
commenced ten or twelve years earlier, the dates will harmonize.
TERTULLIAN [The Prescription against
Heretics, 32], and IRENÆUS, who had
talked with POLYCARP in youth, tell us
POLYCARP was consecrated bishop of Smyrna by St.
John.
the first . . . the last . . . was dead
. . . is alive--The attributes of Christ most calculated
to comfort the Church of Smyrna under its persecutions; resumed from
Re 1:17, 18.
As death was to Him but the gate to life eternal, so it is to be to
them
(Re 2:10, 11).
9. thy works, and--omitted in two oldest manuscripts,
Vulgate, and Coptic. Supported by one oldest manuscript.
tribulation--owing to persecution.
poverty--owing to "the spoiling of their goods."
but thou art rich--in grace. Contrast Laodicea, rich in
the world's eyes and her own, poor before God. "There are both
poor rich-men, and rich poor-men in God's sight"
[TRENCH].
blasphemy of them--blasphemous calumny of thee on the part of
(or arising from) them.
say they are Jews, and are not--Jews by national descent, but
not spiritually of "the true circumcision." The Jews blaspheme Christ
as "the hanged one." As elsewhere, so at Smyrna they bitterly opposed
Christianity; and at POLYCARP'S martyrdom they
joined the heathens in clamoring for his being cast to the lions; and
when there was an obstacle to this, for his being burnt alive; and with
their own hands they carried logs for the pile.
synagogue of Satan--Only once is the term "synagogue" in the New
Testament used of the Christian assembly, and that by the apostle who
longest maintained the union of the Church and Jewish Synagogue. As the
Jews more and more opposed Christianity, and it more and more rooted
itself in the Gentile world, the term "synagogue" was left altogether
to the former, and Christians appropriated exclusively the honorable
term "Church"; contrast an earlier time when the Jewish theocracy is
called "the Church in the wilderness." Compare
Nu 16:3; 20:4,
"congregation of the Lord." Even in
Jas 2:2
it is "your (not the Lord's) assembly." The Jews,
who might have been "the Church of God," had now, by their opposition
and unbelief, become the synagogue of Satan. So "the throne of Satan"
(Re 2:13)
represents the heathens' opposition to Christianity; "the depths
of Satan"
(Re 2:24),
the opposition of heretics.
10. Fear none, &c.--the oldest manuscripts read, "Fear
not those things," &c. "The Captain of our salvation never keeps
back what those who faithfully witness for Him may have to bear for His
name's sake; never entices recruits by the promise they shall find all
things easy and pleasant there" [TRENCH].
devil--"the accuser." He acted, through Jewish accusers
against Christ and His people. The conflict of the latter was not with
mere flesh and blood, but with the rulers of the darkness of this
world.
tried--with temptation by "the devil." The same event is
often both a temptation from the devil, and a trial from
God--God sifting and winnowing the man to separate his chaff from his
wheat, the devil sifting him in the hope that nothing but chaff will be
found in him [TRENCH].
ten days--not the ten persecutions from Nero to Diocletian.
LYRA explains ten years on the year-day
principle. The shortness of the duration of the persecution is
evidently made the ground of consolation. The time of trial shall be
short, the duration of your joy shall be for ever. Compare the use of
"ten days" for a short time,
Ge 24:55;
Nu 11:19.
Ten is the number of the world powers hostile to the Church;
compare the ten horns of the beast,
Re 13:1.
unto death--so as even to endure death for My sake.
crown of life--
Jas 1:12;
2Ti 4:8,
"crown of righteousness";
1Pe 5:4,
"crown of glory." The crown is the garland, the mark of a
conqueror, or of one rejoicing, or at a feast; but
diadem is the mark of a KING.
11. shall not be hurt--Greek, "shall not by any means (or
possibly) be hurt."
the second death--"the lake of fire." "The death in life of the
lost, as contrasted with the life in death of the saved" [TRENCH]. The phrase "the second death" is peculiar to the
Apocalypse. What matter about the first death, which sooner or later
must pass over us, if we escape the second death? "It seems that
they who die that death shall be hurt by it; whereas, if it were
annihilation, and so a conclusion of their torments, it would be no way
hurtful, but highly beneficial to them. But the living torments are the
second death" [BISHOP
PEARSON]. "The life of the damned is death"
[AUGUSTINE]. Smyrna (meaning myrrh)
yielded its sweet perfume in being bruised even to death. Myrrh was
used in embalming dead bodies
(Joh 19:39);
was an ingredient in the holy anointing oil
(Ex 30:23);
a perfume of the heavenly Bridegroom
(Ps 45:8),
and of the bride
(So 3:6).
"Affliction, like it, is bitter for the time being, but
salutary; preserving the elect from corruption, and
seasoning them for immortality, and gives scope for the exercise
of the fragrantly breathing Christian virtues" [VITRINGA]. POLYCARP'S noble words
to his heathen judges who wished him to recant, are well known:
"Fourscore and six years have I served the Lord, and He never wronged
me, how then can I blaspheme my King and Saviour?" Smyrna's
faithfulness is rewarded by its candlestick not having been removed out
of its place
(Re 2:5);
Christianity has never wholly left it; whence the Turks call it,
"Infidel Smyrna."
12. TRENCH prefers writing Pergamus,
or rather, Pergamum, on the river Caicus. It was capital of
Attalus the Second's kingdom, which was bequeathed by him to the
Romans, 133 B.C. Famous for its library, founded
by Eumenes (197-159), and destroyed by Caliph Omar. Parchment,
that is, Pergamena charta, was here discovered for book
purposes. Also famous for the magnificent temple of Æsculapius,
the healing god [TACITUS, Annals, 3.63].
he which hath the sharp sword with two edges--appropriate to His
address having a twofold bearing, a searching power so as to convict
and convert some
(Re 2:13, 17),
and to convict and condemn to punishment others
(Re 2:14-16,
especially
Re 2:16;
compare also see on
Re 1:16).
13. I know thy works--Two oldest manuscripts omit this clause;
one oldest manuscript retains it.
Satan's seat--rather as the Greek is translated all
through Revelation, "throne." Satan, in impious mimicry of God's
heavenly throne, sets up his earthly throne
(Re 4:2).
Æsculapius was worshipped there under the serpent form; and
Satan, the old serpent, as the instigator (compare
Re 2:10)
of fanatical devotees of Æsculapius, and, through them, of the
supreme magistracy at Pergamos, persecuted one of the Lord's people
(Antipas) even to death. Thus, this address is an anticipatory preface
to
Re 12:1-17;
Note: "throne . . . the dragon, Satan
. . . war with her seed,"
Re 12:5, 9, 17.
even in those days--Two oldest manuscripts omit "even"; two
retain it.
wherein--Two oldest manuscripts omit this (then translate, "in
the days of Antipas, My faithful witness," or "martyr"); two retain it.
Two oldest manuscripts read, "My witness, MY faithful one"; two read as
English Version. Antipas is another form for Antipater. SIMEON METAPHRASTES has a palpably
legendary story, unknown to the early Fathers, that Antipas, in
Domitian's reign, was shut up in a red-hot brazen bull, and ended his
life in thanksgivings and prayers. HENGSTENBERG
makes the name, like other apocalyptic names, symbolical, meaning one
standing out "against all" for Christ's sake.
14. few--in comparison of the many tokens of thy
faithfulness.
hold the doctrine of Balaam--"the teaching of Balaam,"
namely, that which he "taught Balak." Compare "the counsel of Balaam,"
Nu 31:16.
"Balak" is dative in the Greek, whence
BENGEL translates, "taught (the Moabites) for
(that is, to please) Balak." But though in Numbers it is not expressly
said he taught Balak, yet there is nothing said inconsistent
with his having done so; and JOSEPHUS
[Antiquities,4. 6. 6], says he did so. The dative case is a
Hebraism for the accusative case.
children--Greek, "sons of Israel."
stumbling-block--literally, that part of a trap on which the
bait was laid, and which, when touched, caused the trap to close on its
prey; then any entanglement to the foot [TRENCH].
eat things sacrificed unto idols--the act common to the
Israelites of old, and the Nicolaitanes in John's day; he does not add
what was peculiar to the Israelites, namely, that they
sacrificed to idols. The temptation to eat idol-meats was a
peculiarly strong one to the Gentile converts. For not to do so
involved almost a withdrawal from partaking of any social meal with the
heathen around. For idol-meats, after a part had been offered in
sacrifice, were nearly sure to be on the heathen entertainer's table;
so much so, that the Greek "to kill" (thuein) meant
originally "to sacrifice." Hence arose the decree of the council of
Jerusalem forbidding to eat such meats; subsequently some at Corinth
ate unscrupulously and knowingly of such meats, on the ground
that the idol is nothing; others needlessly tortured themselves with
scruples, lest unknowingly they should eat of them when they got
meat from the market or in a heathen friend's house. Paul handles the
question in
1Co 8:1-13; 10:25-33.
fornication--often connected with idolatry.
15. thou--emphatic: "So THOU also hast," As
Balak and the Moabites of old had Balaam and his followers literally,
so hast thou also them that hold the same Balaamite or
Nicolaitane doctrine spiritually or symbolically. Literal eating
of idol-meats and fornication in Pergamos were accompanied by spiritual
idolatry and fornication. So TRENCH explains. But
I prefer taking it, "THOU also," as well as
Ephesus ("in like manner" as Ephesus; see below the oldest reading),
hast . . . Nicolaitanes, with this important difference,
Ephesus, as a Church, hates them and casts them out, but thou
"hast them," namely, in the Church.
doctrine--teaching (see on
Re 2:6):
namely, to tempt God's people to idolatry.
which thing I hate--It is sin not to hate what God hates. The
Ephesian Church
(Re 2:6)
had this point of superiority to Pergamos. But the three oldest
manuscripts, and Vulgate and Syriac, read instead of
"which I hate," "IN LIKE MANNER."
16. The three oldest manuscripts read, "Repent,
therefore." Not only the Nicolaitanes, but the whole Church of
Pergamos is called on to repent of not having hated the
Nicolaitane teaching and practice. Contrast Paul,
Ac 20:26.
I will come--I am coming.
fight against them--Greek, "war with them"; with the
Nicolaitanes primarily; but including also chastisement of the
whole Church at Pergamos: compare "unto THEE."
with the sword of my mouth--resumed from
Re 1:16,
but with an allusion to the drawn sword with which the angel of
the Lord confronted Balaam on his way to curse Israel: an earnest of
the sword by which he and the seduced Israelites fell at last.
The spiritual Balaamites of John's day are to be smitten with the
Lord's spiritual sword, the word or "rod of His mouth."
17. to eat--omitted in the three oldest manuscripts.
the hidden manna--the heavenly food of Israel, in contrast to
the idol-meats
(Re 2:14).
A pot of manna was laid up in the holy place "before the testimony."
The allusion is here to this: probably also to the Lord's discourse
(Joh 6:31-35).
Translate, "the manna which is hidden." As the manna hidden in the
sanctuary was by divine power preserved from corruption, so Christ in
His incorruptible body has passed into the heavens, and is hidden there
until the time of His appearing. Christ Himself is the manna "hidden"
from the world, but revealed to the believer, so that he has already a
foretaste of His preciousness. Compare as to Christ's own hidden food
on earth,
Joh 4:32, 34,
and Job 23:12.
The full manifestation shall be at His coming. Believers are now
hidden, even as their meat is hidden. As the manna in the sanctuary,
unlike the other manna, was incorruptible, so the spiritual feast
offered to all who reject the world's dainties for Christ is
everlasting: an incorruptible body and life for ever in Christ at the
resurrection.
white stone . . . new name . . . no man knoweth
saving he--TRENCH'S explanation seems best.
White is the color and livery of heaven. "New" implies
something altogether renewed and heavenly. The white stone is a
glistening diamond, the Urim borne by the high priest within the
choschen or breastplate of judgment, with the twelve tribes'
names on the twelve precious stones, next the heart. The word
Urim means "light," answering to the color white. None
but the high priest knew the name written upon it, probably the
incommunicable name of God, "Jehovah." The high priest consulted it in
some divinely appointed way to get direction from God when needful. The
"new name" is Christ's (compare
Re 3:12,
"I will write upon him My new name"): some new revelation of
Himself which shall hereafter be imparted to His people, and which they
alone are capable of receiving. The connection with the "hidden manna"
will thus be clear, as none save the high priest had access to the
"manna hidden" in the sanctuary. Believers, as spiritual priests unto
God, shall enjoy the heavenly antitypes to the hidden manna and the
Urim stone. What they had peculiarly to contend against at Pergamos was
the temptation to idol-meats, and fornication, put in
their way by Balaamites. As Phinehas was rewarded with "an everlasting
priesthood" for his zeal against these very sins to which the Old
Testament Balaam seduced Israel; so the heavenly high priesthood is the
reward promised here to those zealous against the New Testament
Balaamites tempting Christ's people to the same sins.
receiveth it--namely, "the stone"; not "the new name"; see
above. The "name that no man knew but Christ Himself," He shall
hereafter reveal to His people.
18. Thyatira--in Lydia, south of Pergamos. Lydia, the
purple-seller of this city, having been converted at Philippi, a
Macedonian city (with which Thyatira, as being a Macedonian colony, had
naturally much intercourse), was probably the instrument of first
carrying the Gospel to her native town. John follows the geographical
order here, for Thyatira lay a little to the left of the road from
Pergamos to Sardis [STRABO, 13:4].
Son of God . . . eyes like . . . fire
. . . feet . . . like fine brass--or "glowing
brass" (see on
Re 1:14,15,
whence this description is resumed). Again His attributes accord with
His address. The title "Son of God," is from
Ps 2:7, 9,
which is referred to in
Re 2:27.
The attribute, "eyes like a flame," &c., answers to
Re 2:23,
"I am He which searcheth the reins and hearts." The attribute, "feet
like . . . brass," answers to
Re 2:27,
"as the vessels of a potter shall they be broken to shivers," He
treading them to pieces with His strong feet.
19. The oldest manuscripts transpose the English Version
order, and read, "faith and service." The four are subordinate to "thy
works"; thus, "I know thy works, even the love and the faith
(these two forming one pair, as 'faith works by love,'
Ga 5:6),
and the service (ministration to the suffering members of the
Church, and to all in spiritual or temporal need), and the endurance of
(that is, shown by) thee (this pronoun belongs to all four)." As
love is inward, so service is its outward manifestation.
Similarly, faith and persevering endurance, or
"patient continuance (the same Greek as here,
Ro 2:7)
in well-doing," are connected.
and thy works; and the last--Omit the second "and," with the
three oldest manuscripts and the ancient versions; translate, "And (I
know) thy works which are last (to be) more in number than the first";
realizing
1Th 4:1;
the converse of
Mt 12:45; 2Pe 2:20.
Instead of retrograding from "the first works" and "first love," as
Ephesus, Thyatira's last works exceeded her first
(Re 2:4, 5).
20. a few things--omitted in the three oldest manuscripts.
Translate then, "I have against thee that," &c.
sufferest--The three oldest manuscripts read, "lettest alone."
that woman--Two oldest manuscripts read,
"THY wife"; two omit it. Vulgate and most
ancient versions read as English Version. The symbolical Jezebel
was to the Church of Thyatira what Jezebel, Ahab's "wife," was to him.
Some self-styled prophetess (or as the feminine in Hebrew is
often used collectively to express a multitude, a set of
false prophets), as closely attached to the Church of Thyatira as a
wife is to a husband, and as powerfully influencing for evil
that Church as Jezebel did Ahab. As Balaam, in Israel's early history,
so Jezebel, daughter of Eth-baal, king of Sidon
(1Ki 16:31,
formerly priest of Astarte, and murderer of his predecessor on the
throne, JOSEPHUS
[Against Apion, 1.18]), was the great seducer to
idolatry in Israel's later history. Like her father, she was swift to
shed blood. Wholly given to Baal worship, like Eth-baal, whose name
expresses his idolatry, she, with her strong will, seduced the weak
Ahab and Israel beyond the calf-worship (which was a worship of the
true God under the cherub-ox form, that is, a violation of the second
commandment) to that of Baal
(a violation of the first commandment also).
She seems to have been herself a priestess and prophetess of
Baal. Compare
2Ki 9:22, 30,
"whoredoms of . . . Jezebel and her
witchcrafts" (impurity was part of the worship of the
Phœnician Astarte, or Venus). Her spiritual counterpart at
Thyatira lured God's "servants" by pretended utterances of inspiration
to the same libertinism, fornication, and eating of idol-meats, as the
Balaamites and Nicolaitanes
(Re 2:6, 14, 15).
By a false spiritualism these seducers led their victims into the
grossest carnality, as though things done in the flesh were outside the
true man, and were, therefore, indifferent. "The deeper the Church
penetrated into heathenism, the more she herself became heathenish;
this prepares us for the expressions 'harlot' and 'Babylon,' applied to
her afterwards" [AUBERLEN].
to teach and to seduce--The three oldest manuscripts read, "and
she teaches and seduces," or "deceives." "Thyatira was just the reverse
of Ephesus. There, much zeal for orthodoxy, but little love; here,
activity of faith and love, but insufficient zeal for godly discipline
and doctrine, a patience of error even where there was not a
participation in it" [TRENCH].
21. space--Greek, "time."
of her fornication . . . she repented not--The three
oldest manuscripts read, "and she willeth not to repent
of (literally, 'out of,' that is, so as to come out of)
her fornication." Here there is a transition from literal to
spiritual fornication, as appears from
Re 2:22.
The idea arose from Jehovah's covenant relation to the Old Testament
Church being regarded as a marriage, any transgression against which
was, therefore, harlotry, fornication, or adultery.
22. Behold--calling attention to her awful doom to come.
I will--Greek present, "I cast her."
a bed--The place of her sin shall be the place of her
punishment. The bed of her sin shall be her bed of sickness and
anguish. Perhaps a pestilence was about to be sent. Or the bed of the
grave, and of the hell beyond, where the worm dieth not.
them that commit adultery with her--spiritually; including both
the eating of idol-meats and fornication. "With her," in
the Greek, implies participation with her in her
adulteries, namely, by suffering her
(Re 2:20),
or letting her alone, and so virtually encouraging her.
Her punishment is distinct from theirs; she is to be cast into a
bed, and her children to be killed; while those
who make themselves partakers of her sin by tolerating her, are to be
cast into great tribulation.
except they repent--Greek aorist, "repent" at
once; shall have repented by the time limited in My purpose.
their deeds--Two of the oldest manuscripts and most ancient
versions read "her." Thus, God's true servants, who by connivance, are
incurring the guilt of her deeds, are distinguished from her.
One oldest manuscript, ANDREAS, and
CYPRIAN, support "their."
23. her children--
(Isa 57:3;
Eze 23:45, 47).
Her proper adherents; not those who suffer her, but those who
are begotten of her. A distinct class from the last in
Re 2:22
(compare Note, see on
Re 2:22),
whose sin was less direct, being that only of connivance.
kill . . . with death--Compare the disaster that
overtook the literal Jezebel's votaries of Baal, and Ahab's sons,
1Ki 18:40;
2Ki 10:6, 7, 24, 25.
Kill with death is a Hebraism for slay with most sure and
awful death; so "dying thou shalt die"
(Ge 2:17).
Not "die the common death of men"
(Nu 16:29).
all the churches shall know--implying that these addresses are
designed for the catholic Church of all ages and places. So palpably
shall God's hand be seen in the judgment on Thyatira, that the whole
Church shall recognize it as God's doing.
I am he--the "I" is strongly emphatical: "that it is I am
He who," &c.
searcheth . . . hearts--God's peculiar attribute is
given to Christ. The "reins" are the seat of the desires; the "heart,"
that of the thoughts. The Greek for "searcheth" expresses an
accurate following up of all tracks and windings.
unto every one of you--literally, "unto you, to each."
according to your works--to be judged not according to the mere
act as it appears to man, but with reference to the motive,
faith and love being the only motives which God
recognizes as sound.
24. you . . . and . . . the rest--The three
oldest manuscripts omit "and"; translate then, "Unto you, the rest."
as many as have not--not only do not hold, but are free
from contact with.
and which--The oldest manuscripts omit "and"; translate,
"whosoever."
the depths--These false prophets boasted peculiarly of their
knowledge of mysteries and the deep things of God;
pretensions subsequently expressed by their arrogant title,
Gnostics ("full of knowledge"). The Spirit here declares their
so-called "depths," (namely, of knowledge of divine things) to be
really "depths of Satan"; just as in
Re 2:9,
He says, instead of "the synagogue of God," "the synagogue of
Satan." HENGSTENBERG thinks the teachers
themselves professed to fathom the depths of Satan, giving loose
rein to fleshly lusts, without being hurt thereby. They who thus think
to fight Satan with his own weapons always find him more than a match
for them. The words, "as they speak," that is, "as they call them,"
coming after not only "depths," but "depths of Satan," seem to favor
this latter view; otherwise I should prefer the former, in which case,
"as they speak," or "call them," must refer to "depths" only, not also
"depths of Satan." The original sin of Adam was a desire to know
EVIL as well as good, so in HENGSTENBERG'S view, those who professed to know "the
depths of Satan." It is the prerogative of God alone to know evil
fully, without being hurt or defiled by it.
I will put--Two oldest manuscripts have "I put," or "cast." One
oldest manuscript reads as English Version.
none other burden--save abstinence from, and protestation
against, these abominations; no "depths" beyond your reach, such as
they teach, no new doctrine, but the old faith and rule of practice
once for all delivered to the saints. Exaggerating and perfecting
Paul's doctrine of grace without the law as the source of justification
and sanctification, these false prophets rejected the law as a rule of
life, as though it were an intolerable "burden." But it is a "light"
burden. In
Ac 15:28, 29,
the very term "burden," as here, is used of abstinence from fornication
and idol-meats; to this the Lord here refers.
25. that which ye have already--
(Jude 3,
end).
hold fast--do not let go from your grasp, however false teachers
may wish to wrest it from you.
till I come--when your conflict with evil will be at an end. The
Greek implies uncertainty as to when He shall come.
26. And--implying the close connection of the promise to the
conqueror that follows, with the preceding exhortation,
Re 2:25.
and keepeth--Greek, "and he that keepeth." Compare the
same word in the passage already alluded to by the Lord,
Ac 15:28, 29,
end.
my works--in contrast to "her (English Version, 'their')
works"
(Re 2:22).
The works which I command and which are the fruit of My Spirit.
unto the end--
(Mt 24:13).
The image is perhaps from the race, wherein it is not enough to enter
the lists, but the runner must persevere to the end.
give power--Greek, "authority."
over the nations--at Christ's coming the saints shall possess
the kingdom "under the whole heaven"; therefore over this earth;
compare
Lu 19:17,
"have thou authority [the same word as here] over ten
cities."
27. From
Ps 2:8, 9.
rule--literally, "rule as a shepherd." In
Ps 2:9
it is, "Thou shalt break them with a rod of iron." The
Septuagint, pointing the Hebrew word differently, read as
Revelation here. The English Version of
Ps 2:9
is doubtless right, as the parallel word, "dash in pieces," proves. But
the Spirit in this case sanctions the additional thought as
true, that the Lord shall mingle mercy to some, with judgment on
others; beginning by destroying His Antichristian foes, He shall reign
in love over the rest. "Christ shall rule them with a scepter of
iron, to make them capable of being ruled with a scepter of gold;
severity first, that grace may come after" (TRENCH, who thinks we ought to translate "SCEPTER" for "rod," as in
Heb 1:8).
"Shepherd" is used in
Jer 6:3,
of hostile rulers; so also in
Zec 11:16.
As severity here is the primary thought, "rule as a shepherd" seems to
me to be used thus: He who would have shepherded them with a pastoral
rod, shall, because of their hardened unbelief, shepherd them with a
rod of iron.
shall they be broken--So one oldest manuscript, Vulgate,
Syriac, and Coptic Versions read. But two oldest
manuscripts, read, "as the vessels of a potter are broken to
shivers." A potter's vessel dashed to pieces, because of its
failing to answer the design of the maker, is the image to depict God's
sovereign power to give reprobates to destruction, not by caprice, but
in the exercise of His righteous judgment. The saints shall be in
Christ's victorious "armies" when He shall inflict the last decisive
blow, and afterwards shall reign with Him. Having by faith "overcome
the world," they shall also rule the world.
even as I--"as I also have received of (from) My Father,"
namely, in
Ps 2:7-9.
Jesus had refused to receive the kingdom without the cross at Satan's
hands; He would receive it from none but the Father, who had appointed
the cross as the path to the crown. As the Father has given the
authority to Me over the heathen and uttermost parts of the earth, so I
impart a share of it to My victorious disciple.
28. the morning star--that is, I will give unto him Myself, who am "the morning star" (Re 22:16); so that reflecting My perfect brightness, he shall shine like Me, the morning star, and share My kingly glory (of which a star is the symbol, Nu 21:17; Mt 2:2). Compare Re 2:17, "I will give him . . . the hidden manna," that is, Myself, who am that manna (Joh 6:31-33).
CHAPTER 3
Re 3:1-22. THE EPISTLES TO SARDIS, PHILADELPHIA, AND LAODICEA.
1. Sardis--the ancient capital of Lydia, the kingdom of wealthy
Croesus, on the river Pactolus. The address to this Church is full of
rebuke. It does not seem to have been in vain; for
MELITO, bishop of Sardis in the second century,
was eminent for piety and learning. He visited Palestine to assure
himself and his flock as to the Old Testament canon and wrote an
epistle on the subject [EUSEBIUS Ecclesiastical
History, 4.26]; he also wrote a commentary on the Apocalypse
[EUSEBIUS, Ecclesiastical History, 4.26;
JEROME, On Illustrious Men, 24].
he that hath the seven Spirits of God--that is, He who hath all
the fulness of the Spirit
(Re 1:4; 4:5; 5:6,
with which compare
Zec 3:9; 4:10,
proving His Godhead). This attribute implies His infinite power by the
Spirit to convict of sin and of a hollow profession.
and the seven stars--
(Re 1:16, 20).
His having the seven stars, or presiding ministers, flows, as a
consequence, from His having the seven Spirits, or the fulness
of the Holy Spirit. The human ministry is the fruit of Christ's sending
down the gifts of the Spirit. Stars imply brilliancy and glory;
the fulness of the Spirit, and the fulness of brilliant light in Him,
form a designed contrast to the formality which He reproves.
name . . . livest . . . dead--
(1Ti 5:6;
2Ti 3:5;
Tit 1:16;
compare
Eph 2:1, 5; 5:14).
"A name," that is, a reputation. Sardis was famed among the churches
for spiritual vitality; yet the Heart-searcher, who seeth not as
man seeth, pronounces her dead; how great searchings of heart
should her case create among even the best of us! Laodicea deceived
herself as to her true state
(Re 3:17),
but it is not written that she had a high name among the other
churches, as Sardis had.
2. Be--Greek. "Become," what thou art not, "watchful," or
"wakeful," literally, "waking."
the things which remain--Strengthen those thy remaining few
graces, which, in thy spiritual deadly slumber, are not yet quite
extinct [ALFORD]. "The things that remain" can
hardly mean "the PERSONS that are not yet dead,
but are ready to die"; for
Re 3:4
implies that the "few" faithful ones at Sardis were not "ready to die,"
but were full of life.
are--The two oldest manuscripts read, "were ready," literally,
"were about to die," namely, at the time when you "strengthen" them.
This implies that "thou art dead,"
Re 3:1,
is to be taken with limitation; for those must have some life who are
told to strengthen the things that remain.
perfect--literally, "filled up in full complement"; Translate,
"complete." Weighed in the balance of Him who requires living faith as
the motive of works, and found wanting.
before God--Greek, "in the sight of God." The three
oldest manuscripts, Vulgate, Syriac, and Coptic, read,
"before (in the sight of) MY God"; Christ's judgment is God the
Father's judgment. In the sight of men, Sardis had "a name of living":
"so many and so great are the obligations of pastors, that he who would
in reality fulfil even a third of them, would be esteemed holy by men,
whereas, if content with that alone, he would be sure not to escape
hell" [JUAN D'AVILA]. Note:
in Sardis and Laodicea alone of the seven we read of no conflict with
foes within or without the Church. Not that either had renounced the
appearance of opposition to the world; but neither had the
faithfulness to witness for God by word and example, so as to "torment
them that dwelt on the earth"
(Re 11:10).
3. how thou hast received--
(Col 2:6;
1Th 4:1;
1Ti 6:20).
What Sardis is to "remember" is, not how joyfully she had
received originally the Gospel message, but how the precious deposit
was committed to her originally, so that she could not say, she had not
"received and heard" it. The Greek is not aorist (as in
Re 2:4,
as to Ephesus, "Thou didst leave thy first love"), but "thou
hast received" (perfect), and still hast the permanent deposit of
doctrine committed to thee. The word "keep" (so the Greek is for
English Version, "hold fast") which follows, accords with this
sense. "Keep" or observe the commandment which thou hast received and
didst hear.
heard--Greek aorist, "didst hear," namely, when the
Gospel doctrine was committed to thee. TRENCH
explains "how," with what demonstration of the Spirit and power
from Christ's ambassadors the truth came to you, and how heartily and
zealously you at first received it. Similarly
BENGEL, "Regard to her former character
(how it once stood) ought to guard Sardis against the future
hour, whatsoever it shall be, proving fatal to her." But it is
not likely that the Spirit repeats the same exhortation virtually to
Sardis as to Ephesus.
If therefore--seeing thou art so warned, if, nevertheless, &c.
come on thee as a thief--in special judgment on thee as a
Church, with the same stealthiness and as unexpectedly as shall be My
visible second coming. As the thief gives no notice of his
approach. Christ applies the language which in its fullest sense
describes His second coming, to describe His coming in special
judgments on churches and states (as Jerusalem,
Mt 24:4-28)
these special judgments being anticipatory earnests of that great last
coming. "The last day is hidden from us, that every day may be observed
by us" [AUGUSTINE]. Twice Christ in the days of
His flesh spake the same words
(Mt 24:42, 43;
Lu 12:39, 40);
and so deeply had His words been engraven on the minds of the apostles
that they are often repeated in their writings
(Re 16:15;
1Th 5:2, 4, 6;
2Pe 3:10).
The Greek proverb was that "the feet of the avenging deities are shod
with wool," expressing the noiseless approach of the divine judgments,
and their possible nearness at the moment when they were supposed the
farthest off [TRENCH].
4. The three oldest manuscripts prefix "but," or "nevertheless"
(notwithstanding thy spiritual deadness), and omit "even."
names--persons named in the book of life
(Re 3:5)
known by name by the Lord as His own. These had the reality
corresponding to their name; not a mere name among men as
living, while really dead
(Re 3:1).
The gracious Lord does not overlook any exceptional cases of real
saints in the midst of unreal professors.
not defiled their garments--namely, the garments of their
Christian profession, of which baptism is the initiatory seal, whence
the candidates for baptism used in the ancient Church to be arrayed in
white. Compare also
Eph 5:27,
as to the spotlessness of the Church when she shall be presented to
Christ; and
Re 19:8,
as to the "fine linen, clean and white, the righteousness of the
saints," in which it shall be granted to her to be arrayed; and "the
wedding garment." Meanwhile she is not to sully her Christian
profession with any defilement of flesh or spirit, but to "keep her
garments." For no defilement shall enter the heavenly city. Not that
any keep themselves here wholly free from defilement; but, as compared
with hollow professors, the godly keep themselves unspotted from the
world; and when they do contract it, they wash it away, so as to
have their "robes white in the blood of the Lamb"
(Re 7:14).
The Greek is not "to stain" (Greek, "miainein"),
but to "defile," or besmear (Greek, "molunein"),
So 5:3.
they shall walk with me in white--The promised reward accords
with the character of those to be rewarded: keeping their garments
undefiled and white through the blood of the Lamb now, they shall
walk with Him in while hereafter. On "with me," compare the very
same words,
Lu 23:43;
Joh 17:24.
"Walk" implies spiritual life, for only the living walk; also liberty,
for it is only the free who walk at large. The grace and dignity of
flowing long garments is seen to best advantage when the person
"walks": so the graces of the saint's manifested character shall appear
fully when he shall serve the Lord perfectly hereafter
(Re 22:3).
they are worthy--with the worthiness (not their own, but that)
which Christ has put on them
(Re 7:14).
Eze 16:14,
"perfect through MY comeliness which I had put upon thee." Grace is
glory in the bud. "The worthiness here denotes a congruity
between the saint's state of grace on earth, and that of
glory, which the Lord has appointed for them, about to be
estimated by the law itself of grace" [VITRINGA].
Contrast
Ac 13:46.
5. white--not a dull white, but glittering, dazzling white
[GROTIUS]. Compare
Mt 13:43.
The body transfigured into the likeness of Christ's body, and emitting
beams of light reflected from Him, is probably the "white raiment"
promised here.
the same--Greek, "THIS man"; he and
he alone. So one oldest manuscript reads. But two oldest manuscripts,
and most of the ancient versions, "shall THUS be
clothed," &c.
raiment--Greek, "garments." "He that overcometh" shall
receive the same reward as they who "have not defiled their garments"
(Re 3:4);
therefore the two are identical.
I will not--Greek, "I will not by any means."
blot out . . . name out of . . . book of
life--of the heavenly city. A register was kept in ancient cities
of their citizens: the names of the dead were of course erased. So
those who have a name that they live and are dead
(Re 3:1),
are blotted out of God's roll of the heavenly citizens and heirs of
eternal life; not that in God's electing decree they ever were
in His book of life. But, according to human conceptions, those who had
a high name for piety would be supposed to be in it, and were, in
respect to privileges, actually among those in the way of salvation;
but these privileges, and the fact that they once might have been
saved, shall be of no avail to them. As to the book of life,
compare
Re
13:8; 17:8; 20:12, 15; 21:27;
Ex 32:32;
Ps 69:28;
Da 12:1.
In the sense of the "call," many are enrolled among the called
to salvation, who shall not be found among the chosen at last.
The pale of salvation is wider than that of election. Election is
fixed. Salvation is open to all and is pending (humanly speaking) in
the case of those mentioned here. But
Re 20:15; 21:27,
exhibit the book of the elect alone in the narrower sense, after the
erasure of the others.
before . . . before--Greek, "in the presence
of." Compare the same promise of Christ's confessing before His Father
those who confessed Him,
Mt 10:32, 33;
Lu 12:8, 9.
He omits "in heaven" after "My Father," because there is, now that He
is in heaven, no contrast between the Father in heaven and the
Son on earth. He now sets His seal from heaven upon many of His
words uttered on earth [TRENCH]. An undesigned
coincidence, proving that these epistles are, as they profess, in their
words, as well as substance, Christ's own addresses; not even tinged
with the color of John's style, such as it appears in his Gospel and
Epistles. The coincidence is mainly with the three other Gospels, and
not with John's, which makes the coincidence more markedly undesigned.
So also the clause, "He that hath an ear, let him hear," is not
repeated from John's Gospel, but from the Lord's own words in the three
synoptic Gospels
(Mt 11:15; 13:9;
Mr 4:9, 23; 7:16;
Lu 8:8; 14:35).
6. (See on Re 2:7.)
7. Philadelphia--in Lydia, twenty-eight miles southeast of
Sardis, built by Attalus Philadelphus, king of Pergamos, who died
A.D. 138. It was nearly destroyed by an earthquake
in the reign of Tiberius [TACITUS, Annals,
2.47]. The connection of this Church with Jews there causes the address
to it to have an Old Testament coloring in the images employed. It and
Smyrna alone of the seven receive unmixed praise.
he that is holy--as in the Old Testament, "the Holy One
of Israel." Thus Jesus and the God of the Old Testament are one. None
but God is absolutely holy (Greek, "hagios," separate
from evil and perfectly hating it). In contrast to "the synagogue of
Satan"
(Re 3:9).
true--Greek, "alethinos":
"VERY God," as distinguished from the false gods
and from all those who say that they are what they are
not
(Re 3:9):
real, genuine. Furthermore, He perfectly realizes all that is
involved in the names, GOD, Light
(Joh 1:9;
1Jo 2:8),
Bread
(Joh 6:32),
the Vine
(Joh 15:1);
as distinguished from all typical, partial, and imperfect realizations
of the idea. His nature answers to His name
(Joh 17:3;
1Th 1:9).
The Greek, "alethes," on the other hand, is
"truth-speaking," "truth-loving"
(Joh 3:33;
Tit 1:2).
he that hath the key of David--the antitype of Eliakim, to whom
the "key," the emblem of authority "over the house of David," was
transferred from Shebna, who was removed from the office of chamberlain
or treasurer, as unworthy of it. Christ, the Heir of the throne of
David, shall supplant all the less worthy stewards who have abused
their trust in God's spiritual house, and "shall reign over the house
of Jacob," literal and spiritual
(Lu 1:32, 33),
"for ever," "as a Son over His own house"
(Heb 3:2-6).
It rests with Christ to open or shut the heavenly palace, deciding who
is, and who is not, to be admitted: as He also opens, or shuts, the
prison, having the keys of hell (the grave) and
death
(Re 1:18).
The power of the keys was given to Peter and the other apostles, only
when, and in so far as, Christ made him and them infallible. Whatever
degrees of this power may have been committed to ministers, the supreme
power belongs to Christ alone. Thus Peter rightly opened the Gospel
door to the Gentiles
(Ac 10:1-48; 11:17, 18;
especially
Ac 14:27,
end). But he wrongly tried to shut the door in part again
(Ga 2:11-18).
Eliakim had "the key of the house of David laid upon his shoulder":
Christ, as the antitypical David, Himself has the key of the supreme
"government upon His shoulder." His attribute here, as in the former
addresses, accords with His promise. Though "the synagogue of Satan,"
false "Jews"
(Re 3:9)
try to "shut" the "door" which I "set open before thee"; "no man can
shut it"
(Re 3:8).
shutteth--So Vulgate and Syriac Versions read. But
the four oldest manuscripts read, "shall shut"; so Coptic
Version and ORIGEN.
and no man openeth--Two oldest manuscripts, B, Aleph,
Coptic Version, and ORIGEN read, "shall
open." Two oldest manuscripts, A, C, and Vulgate Version support
English Version reading.
8. I have set--Greek, "given": it is My gracious
gift to thee.
open door--for evangelization; a door of spiritual usefulness.
The opening of a door by Him to the Philadelphian Church accords
with the previous assignation to Him of "the key of David."
and--The three oldest manuscripts, A, B, C, and ORIGEN read, "which no man can shut."
for--"because."
a little--This gives the idea that Christ says, He sets before
Philadelphia an open door because she has some little strength;
whereas the sense rather is, He does so because she has "but
little strength": being consciously weak herself, she is the fitter
object for God's power to rest on [so AQUINAS],
that so the Lord Christ may have all the glory.
and hast kept--and so, the littleness of thy
strength becoming the source of Almighty power to thee, as leading
thee to rest wholly on My great power, thou hast kept My word.
GROTIUS makes "little strength" to mean that she
had a Church small in numbers and external resources: "a little
flock poor in worldly goods, and of small account in the eyes of men"
[TRENCH]. So ALFORD. I prefer
the view given above. The Greek verbs are in the aorist tense:
"Thou didst keep . . . didst not deny My name": alluding to
some particular occasion when her faithfulness was put to the test.
9. I will make--Greek present, "I make," literally, "I give" (see on Re 3:8). The promise to Philadelphia is larger than that to Smyrna. To Smyrna the promise was that "the synagogue of Satan" should not prevail against the faithful in her: to Philadelphia, that she should even win over some of "the synagogue of Satan" to fall on their faces and confess God is in her of a truth. Translate, "(some) of the synagogue." For until Christ shall come, and all Israel then be saved, there is but "a remnant" being gathered out of the Jews "according to the election of grace." This is an instance of how Christ set before her an "open door," some of her greatest adversaries, the Jews, being brought to the obedience of the faith. Their worshipping before her feet expresses the convert's willingness to take the very lowest place in the Church, doing servile honor to those whom once they persecuted, rather than dwell with the ungodly. So the Philippian jailer before Paul.
10. patience--"endurance." "The word of My endurance" is My
Gospel word, which teaches patient endurance in expectation
of my coming
(Re 1:9).
My endurance is the endurance which I require, and which I
practice. Christ Himself now endures, patiently waiting until
the usurper be cast out, and all "His enemies be made His footstool."
So, too, His Church, for the joy before her of sharing His coming
kingdom, endures patiently. Hence, in
Re 3:11,
follows, "Behold, I come quickly."
I also--The reward is in kind: "because thou didst keep," &c. "I
also (on My side) will keep thee," &c.
from--Greek, "(so as to deliver thee) out of," not
to exempt from temptation.
the hour of temptation--the appointed season of
affliction and temptation (so in
De 4:34
the plagues are called "the temptations of Egypt"), literally,
"the temptation": the sore temptation which is coming on: the
time of great tribulation before Christ's second coming.
to try them that dwell upon the earth--those who are of earth,
earthy
(Re 8:13).
"Dwell" implies that their home is earth, not heaven. All mankind,
except the elect
(Re 13:8, 14).
The temptation brings out the fidelity of those kept by Christ
and hardens the unbelieving reprobates
(Re 9:20, 21; 16:11, 21).
The particular persecutions which befell Philadelphia shortly after,
were the earnest of the great last tribulation before Christ's coming,
to which the Church's attention in all ages is directed.
11. Behold--omitted by the three oldest manuscripts and most
ancient versions.
I come quickly--the great incentive to persevering faithfulness,
and the consolation under present trials.
that . . . which thou hast--"The word of my patience,"
or "endurance"
(Re 3:10),
which He had just commended them for keeping, and which involved with
it the attaining of the kingdom; this they would lose if they yielded
to the temptation of exchanging consistency and suffering for
compromise and ease.
that no man take thy crown--which otherwise thou wouldst
receive: that no tempter cause thee to lose it: not that the tempter
would thus secure it for himself
(Col 2:18).
12. pillar in the temple--In one sense there shall be "no
temple" in the heavenly city because there shall be no distinction of
things into sacred and secular, for all things and persons shall be
holy to the Lord. The city shall be all one great temple, in which the
saints shall be not merely stones, as m the spiritual temple now
on earth, but all eminent as pillars: immovably firm (unlike
Philadelphia, the city which was so often shaken by earthquakes,
STRABO [12 and 13]), like the colossal pillars
before Solomon's temple, Boaz (that is, "In it is strength") and Jachin
("It shall be established"): only that those pillars were outside,
these shall be within the temple.
my God--(See on
Re 2:7).
go no more out--The Greek is stronger, never more at
all. As the elect angels are beyond the possibility of falling,
being now under (as the Schoolmen say) "the blessed necessity of
goodness," so shall the saints be. The door shall be once for all shut,
as well to shut safely in for ever the elect, as to shut out the lost
(Mt 25:10;
Joh 8:35;
compare
Isa 22:23,
the type, Eliakim). They shall be priests for ever unto God
(Re 1:6).
"Who would not yearn for that city out of which no friend departs, and
into which no enemy enters?" [AUGUSTINE in
TRENCH].
write upon him the name of my God--as belonging to God in a
peculiar sense
(Re 7:3; 9:4; 14:1;
and especially
Re 22:4),
therefore secure. As the name of Jehovah ("Holiness to the Lord") was
on the golden plate on the high priest's forehead
(Ex 28:36-38);
so the saints in their heavenly royal priesthood shall bear His name
openly, as consecrated to Him. Compare the caricature of this in the
brand on the forehead of the beast's followers
(Re 13:16, 17),
and on the harlot
(Re 17:5;
compare
Re 20:4).
name of the city of my God--as one of its citizens
(Re 21:2, 3, 10,
which is briefly alluded to by anticipation here). The full description
of the city forms the appropriate close of the book. The saint's
citizenship is now hidden, but then it shall be manifested: he shall
have the right to enter in through the gates into the city
(Re 22:14).
This was the city which Abraham looked for.
new--Greek, "kaine." Not the old Jerusalem, once
called "the holy city," but having forfeited the name. Greek,
"nea," would express that it had recently come into
existence; but Greek, "kaine," that which is new and
different, superseding the worn-out old Jerusalem and its polity.
"John, in the Gospel, applies to the old city the Greek name
Hierosolyma. But in the Apocalypse, always, to the heavenly city
the Hebrew name, Hierousalem. The Hebrew name is the
original and holier one: the Greek, the recent and more secular
and political one" [BENGEL].
my new name--at present incommunicable and only known to God: to
be hereafter revealed and made the believer's own in union with God in
Christ. Christ's name written on him denotes he shall be wholly
Christ's. New also relates to Christ, who shall assume a new
character (answering to His "new name") entering with His saints on a
kingdom--not that which He had with the Father before the worlds, but
that earned by His humiliation as Son of man.
GIBBON, the infidel [Decline and Fall, ch.
64], gives an unwilling testimony to the fulfilment of the prophecy as
to Philadelphia from a temporal point of view, Among the Greek colonies
and churches of Asia, Philadelphia is still erect,--a column in
a scene of ruins--a pleasing example that the paths of honor and safety
may sometimes be the same."
13. (See on Re 2:7).
14. Laodiceans--The city was in the southwest of Phrygia, on the
river Lycus, not far from Colosse, and lying between it and
Philadelphia. It was destroyed by an earthquake,
A.D. 62, and rebuilt by its wealthy citizens
without the help of the state [TACITUS,
Annals, 14.27]. This wealth (arising from the excellence of its
wools) led to a self-satisfied, lukewarm state in spiritual things, as
Re 3:17
describes. See on
Col 4:16,
on the Epistle which is thought to have been written to the Laodicean
Church by Paul. The Church in latter times was apparently flourishing;
for one of the councils at which the canon of Scripture was determined
was held in Laodicea in A.D. 361. Hardly a
Christian is now to be found on or near its site.
the Amen--
(Isa 65:16,
Hebrew, "Bless Himself in the God of Amen . . .
swear by the God of Amen,"
2Co 1:20).
He who not only says, but is, the Truth. The saints used
Amen at the end of prayer, or in assenting to the word of God;
but none, save the Son of God, ever said, "Amen, I say unto you," for
it is the language peculiar to God, who avers by Himself. The
New Testament formula, "Amen. I say unto you," is equivalent to the Old
Testament formula, "as I live, saith Jehovah." In John's Gospel
alone He uses (in the Greek) the double "Amen,"
Joh 1:51; 3:3,
&c.; in English Version," Verily, verily." The title happily
harmonizes with the address. His unchanging faithfulness as "the Amen"
contrasts with Laodicea's wavering of purpose, "neither hot nor cold"
(Re 3:16).
The angel of Laodicea has with some probability been conjectured to be
Archippus, to whom, thirty years previously, Paul had already given a
monition, as needing to be stirred up to diligence in his ministry. So
the Apostolic Constitutions, [8.46], name him as the first
bishop of Laodicea: supposed to be the son of Philemon
(Phm 2).
faithful and true witness--As "the Amen" expresses the
unchangeable truth of His promises; so "the faithful the true witness,"
the truth of His revelations as to the heavenly things which He has
seen and testifies. "Faithful," that is, trustworthy
(2Ti 2:11, 13).
"True" is here (Greek, "alethinos") not
truth-speaking (Greek, "alethes"), but "perfectly
realizing all that is comprehended in the name Witness"
(1Ti 6:13).
Three things are necessary for this: (1) to have seen with His own eyes
what He attests; (2) to be competent to relate it for others; (3) to be
willing truthfully to do so. In Christ all these conditions meet
[TRENCH].
beginning of the creation of God--not he whom God created first,
but as in
Col 1:15-18
(see on
Col 1:15-18),
the Beginner of all creation, its originating instrument. All
creation would not be represented adoring Him, if He were but one of
themselves. His being the Creator is a strong guarantee for His
faithfulness as "the Witness and Amen."
15. neither cold--The antithesis to "hot," literally, "boiling" ("fervent," Ac 18:25; Ro 12:11; compare So 8:6; Lu 24:32), requires that "cold" should here mean more than negatively cold; it is rather, positively icy cold: having never yet been warmed. The Laodiceans were in spiritual things cold comparatively, but not cold as the world outside, and as those who had never belonged to the Church. The lukewarm state, if it be the transitional stage to a warmer, is a desirable state (for a little religion, if real, is better than none); but most fatal when, as here, an abiding condition, for it is mistaken for a safe state (Re 3:17). This accounts for Christ's desiring that they were cold rather than lukewarm. For then there would not be the same "danger of mixed motive and disregarded principle" [ALFORD]. Also, there is more hope of the "cold," that is, those who are of the world, and not yet warmed by the Gospel call; for, when called, they may become hot and fervent Christians: such did the once-cold publicans, Zaccheus and Matthew, become. But the lukewarm has been brought within reach of the holy fire, without being heated by it into fervor: having religion enough to lull the conscience in false security, but not religion enough to save the soul: as Demas, 2Ti 4:10. Such were the halters between two opinions in Israel (1Ki 18:21; compare 2Ki 17:41; Mt 6:24).
16. neither cold nor hot--So one oldest manuscript, B, and
Vulgate read. But two oldest manuscripts, Syriac, and
Coptic transpose thus, "hot nor cold." It is remarkable that the
Greek adjectives are in the masculine, agreeing with the angel,
not feminine, agreeing with the Church. The Lord addresses the angel as
the embodiment and representative of the Church. The chief minister is
answerable for his flock if he have not faithfully warned the members
of it.
I will--Greek, "I am about to," "I am ready to": I have
it in my mind: implying graciously the possibility of the threat not
being executed, if only they repent at once. His dealings towards them
will depend on theirs towards Him.
spue thee out of my month--reject with righteous loathing, as
Canaan spued out its inhabitants for their abominations. Physicians
used lukewarm water to cause vomiting. Cold and
hot drinks were common at feasts, but never lukewarm.
There were hot and cold springs near Laodicea.
17. Self-sufficiency is the fatal danger of a lukewarm state
(see on
Re 3:15).
thou sayest--virtually and mentally, if not in so many words.
increased with goods--Greek, "have become enriched,"
implying self-praise in self-acquired riches. The Lord alludes to
Ho 12:8.
The riches on which they prided themselves were spiritual riches;
though, doubtless, their spiritual self-sufficiency ("I have need of
nothing") was much fostered by their worldly wealth; as, on the other
hand, poverty of spirit is fostered by poverty in respect
to worldly riches.
knowest not that thou--in particular above all others. The
"THOU" in the Greek is emphatic.
art wretched--Greek, "art the wretched one."
miserable--So one oldest manuscripts reads. But two oldest
manuscripts prefix "the." Translate, "the pitiable"; "the one
especially to be pitied." How different Christ's estimate of men, from
their own estimate of themselves, "I have need of nothing!"
blind--whereas Laodicea boasted of a deeper than common
insight into divine things. They were not absolutely
blind, else eye-salve would have been of no avail to
them; but short-sighted.
18. Gentle and loving irony. Take My advice, thou who
fanciest thyself in need of nothing. Not only art thou not in
need of nothing, but art in need of the commonest necessaries of
existence. He graciously stoops to their modes of thought and speech:
Thou art a people ready to listen to any counsel as to how to
buy to advantage; then, listen to My counsel (for I am
"Counsellor,"
Isa 9:6),
buy of ME" (in whom, according to Paul's
Epistle written to the neighboring Colosse and intended for the
Laodicean Church also,
Col 2:1, 3; 4:16,
are hidden all the treasures of wisdom and knowledge). "Buy"
does not imply that we can, by any work or merit of ours,
purchase God's free gift; nay the very purchase money consists
in the renunciation of all self-righteousness, such as Laodicea had
(Re 3:17).
"Buy" at the cost of thine own self-sufficiency (so Paul,
Php 3:7, 8);
and the giving up of all things, however dear to us, that would prevent
our receiving Christ's salvation as a free gift, for
example, self and worldly desires. Compare
Isa 55:1,
"Buy . . . without money and price."
of me--the source of "unsearchable riches"
(Eph 3:8).
Laodicea was a city of extensive money transactions [CICERO].
gold tried in, &c.--literally, "fired (and fresh)
from the fire," that is, just fresh from the furnace
which has proved its purity, and retaining its bright gloss. Sterling
spiritual wealth, as contrasted with its counterfeit, in which Laodicea
boasted itself. Having bought this gold she will be no longer
poor
(Re 3:17).
mayest be rich--Greek, "mayest be enriched."
white raiment--"garments." Laodicea's wools were famous. Christ
offers infinitely whiter raiment. As "gold tried in the fire" expresses
faith tested by fiery trials: so "white raiment," Christ's
righteousness imputed to the believer in justification and imparted
in sanctification.
appear--Greek, "be manifested," namely, at the last day,
when everyone without the wedding garment shall be discovered. To strip
one, is in the East the image of putting to open shame. So also to
clothe one with fine apparel is the image of doing him honor. Man can
discover his shame, God alone can cover it, so that his nakedness shall
not be manifested at last
(Col 3:10-14).
Blessed is he whose sin is so covered. The hypocrite's shame may
be manifested now; it must be so at last.
anoint . . . with eye-salve--The oldest manuscripts
read, "(buy of Me) eye-salve (collyrium, a roll of ointment),
to anoint thine eyes." Christ has for Laodicea an ointment far
more precious than all the costly unguents of the East. The eye
is here the conscience or inner light of the mind. According as it is
sound and "single" (Greek, "haplous," "simple"), or
otherwise, the man sees aright spiritually, or does not. The Holy
Spirit's unction, like the ancient eye-salve's, first smarts with
conviction of sin, then heals. He opens our eyes first to ourselves in
our wretchedness, then to the Saviour in His preciousness. TRENCH notices that the most sunken churches of the
seven, namely, Sardis and Laodicea, are the ones in which alone are
specified no opponents from without, nor heresies from within. The
Church owes much to God's overruling Providence which has made so often
internal and external foes, in spite of themselves, to promote His
cause by calling forth her energies in contending for the faith once
delivered to the saints. Peace is dearly bought at the cost of
spiritual stagnation, where there is not interest enough felt in
religion to contend about it at all.
19.
(Job 5:17;
Pr 3:11, 12;
Heb 12:5, 6.)
So in the case of Manasseh
(2Ch 33:11-13).
As many--All. "He scourgeth every son whom He receiveth. And
shalt thou be an exception? If excepted from suffering the scourge,
thou art excepted from the number of the sons"
[AUGUSTINE]. This is an encouragement to Laodicea
not to despair, but to regard the rebuke as a token for good, if she
profit by it.
I love--Greek, "philo," the love of gratuitous
affection, independent of any grounds for esteem in the object
loved. But in the case of Philadelphia
(Re 3:9),
"I have loved thee" (Greek, "egapesa") with the love of
esteem, founded on the judgment. Compare the note in my
English Gnomon of BENGEL,
Joh 21:15-17.
I rebuke--The "I" in the Greek stands first in the
sentence emphatically. I in My dealings, so altogether unlike man's, in
the case of all whom I love, rebuke. The Greek,
"elencho," is the same verb as in
Joh 16:8,
"(the Holy Ghost) will convince (rebuke unto conviction) the
world of sin."
chasten--"chastise." The Greek, "paideu," which in
classical Greek means to instruct, in the New Testament
means to instruct by chastisement
(Heb 12:5, 6).
David was rebuked unto conviction, when he cried, "I have sinned
against the Lord"; the chastening followed when his child was
taken from him
(2Sa 12:13, 14).
In the divine chastening, the sinner at one and the same time
winces under the rod and learns righteousness.
be zealous--habitually. Present tense in the Greek, of a
lifelong course of zeal. The opposite of "lukewarm." The
Greek by alliteration marks this: Laodicea had not been "hot"
(Greek, "zestos"), she is therefore urged to "be zealous"
(Greek, "zeleue"): both are derived from the same verb,
Greek, "zeo," "to boil."
repent--Greek aorist: of an act to be once for all
done, and done at once.
20. stand--waiting in wonderful condescension and
long-suffering.
knock--
(So 5:2).
This is a further manifestation of His loving desire for the sinner's
salvation. He who is Himself "the Door," and who bids us "knock" that
it may be "opened unto" us, is first Himself to knock at the door of
our hearts. If He did not knock first, we should never come to knock at
His door. Compare
So 5:4-6,
which is plainly alluded to here; the Spirit thus in Revelation sealing
the canonicity of that mystical book. The spiritual state of the bride
there, between waking and sleeping, slow to open the door
to her divine lover, answers to that of the lukewarm Laodicea
here. "Love in regard to men emptied (humbled) God; for He does not
remain in His place and call to Himself the servant whom He loved, but
He comes down Himself to seek him, and He who is all-rich arrives at
the lodging of the pauper, and with His own voice intimates His
yearning love, and seeks a similar return, and withdraws not when
disowned, and is not impatient at insult, and when persecuted still
waits at the doors" [NICOLAUS CABASILAS in TRENCH].
my voice--He appeals to the sinner not only with His hand (His
providences) knocking, but with His voice (His word read
or heard; or rather, His Spirit inwardly applying to man's spirit the
lessons to be drawn from His providence and His word). If we refuse to
answer to His knocking at our door now, He will refuse to hear our
knocking at His door hereafter. In respect to His second coming also,
He is even now at the door, and we know not how soon He may
knock: therefore we should always be ready to open to Him
immediately.
if any man hear--for man is not compelled by irresistible force:
Christ knocks, but does not break open the door, though the
violent take heaven by the force of prayer
(Mt 11:12):
whosoever does hear, does so not of himself, but by the drawings
of God's grace
(Joh 6:44):
repentance is Christ's gift
(Ac 5:31).
He draws, not drags. The Sun of righteousness, like the natural
sun, the moment that the door is opened, pours in His light,
which could not previously find an entrance. Compare HILARY on Psalm 118:19.
I will come in to him--as I did to Zaccheus.
sup with him, and he with me--Delightful reciprocity! Compare
"dwelleth in me, and I in Him,"
Joh 6:56.
Whereas, ordinarily, the admitted guest sups with the admitter, here
the divine guest becomes Himself the host, for He is the bread of life,
and the Giver of the marriage feast. Here again He alludes to the
imagery of
So 4:16,
where the Bride invites Him to eat pleasant fruits, even as He
had first prepared a feast for her, "His fruit was sweet to my taste."
Compare the same interchange,
Joh 21:9-13,
the feast being made up of the viands that Jesus brought, and those
which the disciples brought. The consummation of this blessed
intercommunion shall be at the Marriage Supper of the Lamb, of which
the Lord's Supper is the earnest and foretaste.
21. sit with me in my throne--
(Re 2:26, 27; 20:6;
Mt 19:28; 20:23;
Joh 17:22, 24;
2Ti 2:12).
The same whom Christ had just before threatened to spue out of His
mouth, is now offered a seat with Him on His throne! "The
highest place is within reach of the lowest; the faintest spark of
grace may be fanned into the mightiest flame of love" [TRENCH].
even as I also--Two thrones are here mentioned: (1) His
Father's, upon which He now sits, and has sat since His ascension,
after His victory over death, sin, the world; upon this none can sit
save God, and the God-man Christ Jesus, for it is the incommunicable
prerogative of God alone; (2) the throne which shall be peculiarly
His as the once humbled and then glorified Son of man, to
be set up over the whole earth (heretofore usurped by Satan) at His
coming again; in this the victorious saints shall share
(1Co 6:2).
The transfigured elect Church shall with Christ judge and reign over
the nations in the flesh, and Israel the foremost of them; ministering
blessings to them as angels were the Lord's mediators of blessing and
administrators of His government in setting up His throne in Israel at
Sinai. This privilege of our high calling belongs exclusively to the
present time while Satan reigns, when alone there is scope for conflict
and for victory
(2Ti 2:11, 12).
When Satan shall be bound
(Re 20:4),
there shall be no longer scope for it, for all on earth shall know the
Lord from the least to the greatest. This, the grandest and crowning
promise, is placed at the end of all the seven addresses, to gather all
in one. It also forms the link to the next part of the book, where the
Lamb is introduced seated on His Father's throne
(Re 4:2, 3; 5:5, 6).
The Eastern throne is broad, admitting others besides him who, as
chief, occupies the center. TRENCH notices; The
order of the promises in the seven epistles corresponds to that of the
unfolding of the kingdom of God its first beginnings on earth to its
consummation in heaven. To the faithful at Ephesus: (1) The tree of
life in the Paradise of God is promised
(Re 2:7),
answering to
Ge 2:9.
(2) Sin entered the world and death by sin; but to the faithful at
Smyrna it is promised, they shall not be hurt by the second
death
(Re 2:11).
(3) The promise of the hidden manna
(Re 2:17)
to Pergamos brings us to the Mosaic period, the Church in the
wilderness. (4) That to Thyatira, namely, triumph over the
nations
(Re 2:26, 27),
forms the consummation of the kingdom in prophetic type, the period of
David and Solomon characterized by this power of the nations.
Here there is a division, the seven falling into two groups,
four and three, as often, for example, the Lord's Prayer, three
and four. The scenery of the last three passes from earth to heaven,
the Church contemplated as triumphant, with its steps from glory to
glory. (5) Christ promises to the believer of Sardis not to blot his
name out of the book of life but to confess him before His Father and
the angels at the judgment-day, and clothe him with a glorified body of
dazzling whiteness
(Re 3:4, 5).
(6) To the faithful at Philadelphia Christ promises they shall be
citizens of the new Jerusalem, fixed as immovable pillars there, where
city and temple are one
(Re 3:12);
here not only individual salvation is promised to the believer, as in
the case of Sardis, but also privileges in the blessed communion of the
Church triumphant. (7) Lastly, to the faithful of Laodicea is given the
crowning promise, not only the two former blessings, but a seat with
Christ on His throne, even as He has sat with His Father on His
Father's throne
(Re 3:21).
CHAPTER 4
Re 4:1-11. VISION OF GOD'S THRONE IN HEAVEN; THE FOUR AND TWENTY ELDERS; THE FOUR LIVING CREATURES.
Here begins the Revelation proper; and first, the fourth and fifth chapters set before us the heavenly scenery of the succeeding visions, and God on His throne, as the covenant God of His Church, the Revealer of them to His apostle through Jesus Christ. The first great portion comprises the opening of the seals and the sounding of the trumpets (fourth to eleventh chapters). As the communication respecting the seven churches opened with a suitable vision of the Lord Jesus as Head of the Church, so the second part opens with a vision suitable to the matter to be revealed. The scene is changed from earth to heaven.
1. After this--Greek, "After these things," marking the
opening of the next vision in the succession. Here is the transition
from "the things which are"
(Re 1:19),
the existing state of the seven churches, as a type of the Church in
general, in John's time, to "the things which shall be hereafter,"
namely, in relation to the time when John wrote.
I looked--rather as Greek, "I saw" in vision; not as
English Version means, I directed my look that way.
was--Omit, as not being in the Greek.
opened--"standing open"; not as though John saw it in the act of
being opened. Compare
Eze 1:1;
Mt 3:16;
Ac 7:56; 10:11.
But in those visions the heavens opened, disclosing the visions to
those below on earth. Whereas here, heaven, the temple of God, remains
closed to those on earth, but John is transported in vision through an
open door up into heaven, whence he can see things passing on earth or
in heaven, according as the scenes of the several visions require.
the first voice which I heard--the voice which I heard at first,
namely, in
Re 1:10;
the former voice.
was as it were--Omit was, it not being in the
Greek. "Behold" governs in sense both "a door," &c., and "the
first voice," &c.
Come up hither--through the "open door."
be--come to pass.
hereafter--Greek, "after these things": after the present
time
(Re 1:19).
2. And--omitted in the two oldest manuscripts, Vulgate,
Syriac.
I was, &c.--Greek, "I became in the Spirit" (see on
Re 1:10):
I was completely rapt in vision into the heavenly world.
was set--not was placed, but was situated,
literally, "lay."
one sat on the throne--the Eternal Father: the Creator
(Re 4:11):
also compare
Re 4:8
with Re 1:4,
where also the Father is designated, "which is, and was, and is to
come." When the Son, "the Lamb," is introduced,
Re 5:5-9,
a new song is sung which distinguishes the Sitter on the
throne from the Lamb, "Thou hast redeemed us to
God," and
Re 5:13,
"Unto Him that sitteth upon the throne, and unto the Lamb." So also in
Re 5:7,
as in
Da 7:13,
the Son of man brought before the Ancient of days is
distinguished from Him. The Father in essence is invisible, but in
Scripture at times is represented as assuming a visible form.
3. was--omitted in the two oldest manuscripts but supported by
Vulgate and Coptic.
to look upon--Greek, "in sight," or "appearance."
jasper--From
Re 21:11,
where it is called most precious, which the jasper was
not, EBRARD infers it was a diamond. Ordinarily,
the jasper is a stone of various wavy colors, somewhat
transparent: in
Re 21:11
it represents watery crystalline brightness. The sardine, our
cornelian, or else a fiery red. As the watery brightness represents
God's holiness, so the fiery red His justice executing fiery wrath. The
same union of white or watery brightness and fiery redness appears in
Re 1:14; 10:1;
Eze 1:4; 8:2;
Da 7:9.
rainbow round about the throne--forming a complete circle (type
of God's perfection and eternity: not a half circle as the earthly
rainbow) surrounding the throne vertically. Its various colors, which
combined form one pure solar ray, symbolize the varied aspects of God's
providential dealings uniting in one harmonious whole. Here, however,
the predominating color among the prismatic colors is green, the most
refreshing of colors to look upon, and so symbolizing God's consolatory
promises in Christ to His people amidst judgments on His foes.
Moreover, the rainbow was the appointed token of God's covenant with
all flesh, and His people in particular. Hereby God in type renewed to
man the grant originally made to the first Adam. The antitype will be
the "new heavens and the new earth" restored to redeemed man, just as
the earth, after the destruction by the flood, was restored to Noah. As
the rainbow was first reflected on the waters of the world's ruin, and
continues to be seen only when a cloud is brought over the earth, so
another deluge, namely, of fire, shall precede the new heavens and
earth: the Lord, as here, on His throne, whence
(Re 4:5)
proceed "lightnings and thunderings," shall issue the commission to rid
the earth of its oppressors: but then, amidst judgment, when other
men's hearts fail them for fear, the believer shall be reassured by the
rainbow, the covenant token, round the throne (compare DE BURGH, Exposition of
Revelation). The heavenly bow speaks of the shipwreck of the world
through sin: it speaks also of calm and sunshine after the storm. The
cloud is the regular token of God's and Christ's presence, for
example, in the tabernacle's holiest place; on Mount Sinai at the
giving of the law; at the ascension
(Ac 1:9);
at His coming again
(Re 4:7).
4. seats--rather as the Greek is translated in this very
verse, "thrones," of course lower and smaller than the grand central
throne. So
Re 16:10,
"the seat (rather, throne) of the beasts," in hellish parody of
God's throne.
four and twenty elders--Greek, "the four and
twenty (or as one oldest manuscript, 'twenty-four') elders": the
well-known elders [ALFORD]. But
TREGELLES translates, "Upon the twenty-four
thrones (I saw: omitted in two oldest manuscripts) elders
sitting": which is more probable, as the twenty-four elders were
not mentioned before, whereas the twenty-four thrones were. They
are not angels, for they have white robes and crowns of
victory, implying a conflict and endurance, "Thou hast redeemed
us": they represent the Heads of the Old and New Testament
churches respectively, the Twelve Patriarchs (compare
Re 7:5-8,
not in their personal, but in their representative character), and
Twelve Apostles. So in
Re 15:3,
"the song of Moses, and of the Lamb," the double
constituents of the Church are implied, the Old Testament and the New
Testament. "Elders" is the very term for the ministry both of
the Old and New Testament, the Jewish and the catholic Gentile Church.
The tabernacle was a "pattern" of the heavenly antitype; the holy
place, a figure of HEAVEN ITSELF. Thus Jehovah's
throne is represented by the mercy seat in the holiest, the
Shekinah-cloud over it. "The seven lamps of fire before the throne"
(Re 4:5)
are antitypical to the seven-branched candlestick also in the holiest,
emblem of the manifold Spirit of God: "the sea of glass"
(Re 4:6)
corresponds to the molten sea before the sanctuary, wherein the priests
washed themselves before entering on their holy service; so introduced
here in connection with the redeemed "priests unto God" (compare
Note, see on
Re 15:2).
The "four living creatures"
(Re 4:6, 7)
answer to the cherubim over the mercy seat. So the twenty-four throned
and crowned elders are typified by the twenty-four chiefs of the
twenty-four courses of priests, "Governors of the sanctuary, and
governors of God"
(1Ch 24:5; 25:1-31).
5. proceeded--Greek, "proceed."
thunderings and voices--The two oldest manuscripts transpose,
"voices and thunderings." Compare at the giving of the law on Sinai,
Ex 19:16.
"The thunderings express God's threats against the ungodly:
there are voices in the thunders
(Re 10:3),
that is, not only does He threaten generally, but also predicts
special judgments" [GROTIUS].
seven lamps . . . seven Spirits--The Holy Spirit in
His sevenfold operation, as the light-and-life Giver (compare
Re 5:6,
seven eyes . . . the seven Spirits of God;
Re 1:4; 21:23;
Ps 119:105)
and fiery purifier of the godly, and consumer of the ungodly
(Mt 3:11).
6. Two oldest manuscripts, A, B, Vulgate, Coptic, and
Syriac read, "As it were a sea of glass."
like . . . crystal--not imperfectly transparent as the
ancient common glass, but like rock crystal. Contrast the turbid "many
waters" on which the harlot "sitteth"
(Re 17:1, 15).
Compare
Job 37:18,
"the sky . . . as a molten looking-glass." Thus, primarily,
the pure ether which separates God's throne from John, and from all
things before it, may be meant, symbolizing the "purity, calmness, and
majesty of God's rule" [ALFORD]. But see the
analogue in the temple, the molten sea before the sanctuary
(see on
Re 4:4,
above). There is in this sea depth and transparency, but not the
fluidity and instability of the natural sea (compare
Re 21:1).
It stands solid, calm, and clear, God's judgments are called "a
great deep"
(Ps 36:6).
In
Re 15:2
it is a "sea of glass mingled with fire." Thus there is
symbolized here the purificatory baptism of water and the Spirit of all
who are made "kings and priests unto God." In
Re 15:2
the baptism with the fire of trial is meant. Through both all the
king-priests have to pass in coming to God: His judgments, which
overwhelm the ungodly, they stand firmly upon, as on a solid sea of
glass; able like Christ to walk on the sea, as though it were solid.
round about the throne--one in the midst of each side of the
throne.
four beasts--The Greek for "beasts,"
Re 13:1, 11,
is different, therion, the symbol for the carnal man by
opposition to God losing his true glory, as lord, under Him, of the
lower creatures, and degraded to the level of the beast. Here it
is zoon, "living creatures"; not beast.
7. calf--"a steer" [ALFORD]. The
Septuagint often uses the Greek term here for an
ox
(Ex 22:1; 29:10,
&c.).
as a man--The oldest manuscripts have "as of a man."
8. about him--Greek, "round about him."
ALFORD connects this with the following sentence:
"All round and within (their wings) they are (so two oldest
manuscripts, A, B, and Vulgate read) full of eyes." John's
object is to show that the six wings in each did not interfere with
that which he had before declared, namely, that they were "full of eyes
before and behind." The eyes were round the outside of each
wing, and up the inside of each when half expanded, and of the
part of body in that inward recess.
rest not--literally, "have no rest." How awfully different the
reason why the worshippers of the beast "have no rest day nor night,"
namely, "their torment for ever and ever."
Holy, holy, holy--The "tris-hagion" of the Greek
liturgies. In
Isa 6:3,
as here, it occurs; also
Ps 99:3, 5, 9,
where He is praised as "holy," (1) on account of His majesty
(Re 4:1)
about to display itself; (2) His justice
(Re 4:4)
already displaying itself; (3) His mercy
(Re 4:6-8)
which displayed itself in times past. So here "Holy," as He "who was";
"Holy," as He "who is": "Holy," as He "who is to come." He showed
Himself an object of holy worship in the past creation of all things:
more fully He shows Himself so in governing all things: He will, in the
highest degree, show Himself so in the consummation of all things. "Of
(from) Him, through Him, and to Him, are all things: to whom be glory
for ever. Amen." In
Isa 6:3
there is added, "the whole EARTH is full of His
glory." But in Revelation this is deferred until the glory of THE LORD fills the earth,
His enemies having been destroyed [BENGEL].
Almighty--answering to "Lord of hosts" (Sabaoth),
Isa 6:3.
The cherubim here have six wings, like the seraphim in Isa 6:2; whereas the cherubim in Eze 1:6 had four wings each. They are called by the same name, "living creatures." But whereas in Ezekiel each living creature has all four faces, here the four belong severally one to each. See on Eze 1:6. The four living creatures answer by contrast to the four world powers represented by four beasts. The Fathers identified them with the four Gospels, Matthew the lion, Mark the ox, Luke the man, John the eagle: these symbols, thus viewed, express not the personal character of the Evangelists, but the manifold aspect of Christ in relation to the world (four being the number significant of world-wide extension, for example, the four quarters of the world) presented by them severally: the lion expressing royalty, as Matthew gives prominence to this feature of Christ; the ox, laborious endurance, Christ's prominent characteristic in Mark; man, brotherly sympathy with the whole race of man, Christ's prominent feature in Luke; the eagle, soaring majesty, prominent in John's description of Christ as the Divine Word. But here the context best suits the view which regards the four living creatures as representing the redeemed election-Church in its relation of ministering king-priests to God, and ministers of blessing to the redeemed earth, and the nations on it, and the animal creation, in which man stands at the head of all, the lion at the head of wild beasts, the ox at the head of tame beasts, the eagle at the head of birds and of the creatures of the waters. Compare Re 5:8-10, "Thou hast redeemed us by Thy blood out of every kindred . . . and hast made us unto our God kings and priests: and we shall reign on the earth"; and Re 20:4, the partakers with Christ of the first resurrection, who conjointly with Him reign over the redeemed nations that are in the flesh. Compare as to the happy and willing subjection of the lower animal world, Isa 11:6-8; 65:25; Eze 34:25; Ho 2:18. Jewish tradition says the "four standards" under which Israel encamped in the wilderness, to the east, Judah, to the north, Dan, to the west, Ephraim, to the south, Reuben, were respectively a lion, an eagle, an ox, and a man, while in the midst was the tabernacle containing the Shekinah symbol of the Divine Presence. Thus we have "the picture of that blessed period when--the earth having been fitted for being the kingdom of the Father--the court of heaven will be transferred to earth, and the 'tabernacle of God shall be with men' (Re 21:3), and the whole world will be subject to a never-ending theocracy" (compare DE BURGH, Exposition of Revelation). The point of union between the two views given above is: Christ is the perfect realization of the ideal of man; Christ is presented in His fourfold aspect in the four Gospels respectively. The redeemed election-Church similarly, when in and through Christ (with whom she shall reign) she realizes the ideal of man, shall combine in herself human perfections having a fourfold aspect: (1) kingly righteousness with hatred of evil and judicial equity, answering to the "lion"; (2) laborious diligence in every duty, the "ox"; (3) human sympathy, the "man"; (4) the contemplation of heavenly truth, the "eagle." As the high-soaring intelligence, the eagle, forms the contrasted complement to practical labor, the ox bound to the soil; so holy judicial vengeance against evil, the lion springing suddenly and terribly on the doomed, forms the contrasted complement to human sympathy, the man. In Isa 6:2 we read, "Each had six wings: with twain he covered his face (in reverence, as not presuming to lift up his face to God), with twain he covered his feet (in humility, as not worthy to stand in God's holy presence), and with twain he did fly [in obedient readiness to do instantly God's command]."
9-11. The ground of praise here is God's eternity, and
God's power and glory manifested in the creation of all
things for His pleasure. Creation is the foundation of all God's other
acts of power, wisdom, and love, and therefore forms the first theme of
His creatures' thanksgivings. The four living creatures take the lead
of the twenty-four elders, both in this anthem, and in that new
song which follows on the ground of their redemption
(Re 5:8-10).
when--that is, whensoever: as often as. A simultaneous giving of
glory on the part of the beasts, and on the part of the elders.
give--"shall give" in one oldest manuscript.
for ever and ever--Greek, "unto the ages of the
ages."
10. fall--immediately. Greek, "shall fall down": implying that this ascription of praise shall be repeated onward to eternity. So also, "shall worship . . . shall cast their crowns," namely, in acknowledgment that all the merit of their crowns (not kingly diadems, but the crowns of conquerors) is due to Him.
11. O Lord--The two oldest manuscripts, A, B, Vulgate,
and Syriac add, "and our God." "Our" by virtue of creation, and
especially redemption. One oldest manuscript, B, and Syriac
insert "the Holy One." But another, A, Vulgate, and
Coptic omit this, as English Version does.
glory, &c.--"the glory . . . the honour
. . . the power."
thou--emphatic in the Greek: "It is
THOU who didst create."
all things--Greek, "the all things": the universe.
for, &c.--Greek, "on account of"; "for the sake of Thy
pleasure," or "will." English Version is good Greek.
Though the context better suits, it was because of Thy will,
that "they were" (so one oldest manuscript, A, Vulgate, Syriac,
and Coptic read, instead of English Version "are":
another oldest manuscript, B, reads, "They were not, and were
created," were created out of nothing), that is, were existing,
as contrasted with their previous non-existence. With God to
will is to effect: to determine is to perform. So in
Ge 1:3,
"Let there be light, and there was light": in Hebrew an
expressive tautology, the same word and tense and letters being used
for "let there be," and "there was," marking the simultaneity and
identity of the will and the effect. D. LONGINUS
[On the Sublime, 9], a heathen, praises this description of
God's power by "the lawgiver of the Jews, no ordinary man," as one
worthy of the theme.
were created--by Thy definite act of creation at a definite
time.
CHAPTER 5
Re 5:1-14. THE BOOK WITH SEVEN SEALS: NONE WORTHY TO OPEN IT BUT THE LAMB: HE TAKES IT AMIDST THE PRAISES OF THE REDEEMED, AND OF THE WHOLE HEAVENLY HOST.
1. in, &c.--Greek, "(lying) upon the right hand."
His right hand was open and on it lay the book. On God's part there was
no withholding of His future purposes as contained in the book: the
only obstacle to unsealing it is stated in
Re 5:3
[ALFORD].
book--rather, as accords with the ancient form of books, and
with the writing on the backside, "a roll." The writing on
the back implies fulness and completeness, so that nothing more
needs to be added
(Re 22:18).
The roll, or book, appears from the context to be "the title-deed of
man's inheritance" [DE BURGH] redeemed by Christ, and contains the successive
steps by which He shall recover it from its usurper and obtain actual
possession of the kingdom already "purchased" for Himself and His elect
saints. However, no portion of the roll is said to be unfolded
and read; but simply the seals are successively
opened, giving final access to its contents being read as a
perfect whole, which shall not be until the events symbolized by the
seals shall have been past, when
Eph 3:10
shall receive its complete accomplishment, and the Lamb shall
reveal God's providential plans in redemption in all their manifold
beauties. Thus the opening of the seals will mean the successive steps
by which God in Christ clears the way for the final opening and reading
of the book at the visible setting up of the kingdom of Christ.
Compare, at the grand consummation,
Re 20:12,
"Another book was opened . . . the book of life";
Re 22:19.
None is worthy to do so save the Lamb, for He alone as such has
redeemed man's forfeited inheritance, of which the book is the
title-deed. The question
(Re 5:2)
is not (as commonly supposed), Who should reveal the destinies of the
Church (for this any inspired prophet would be competent to do)? but,
Who has the WORTH to give man a new title to
his lost inheritance? [DE BURGH].
sealed . . . seven seals--Greek, "sealed up,"
or "firmly sealed." The number seven (divided into four, the
world-wide number, and three, the divine) abounds in Revelation and
expresses completeness. Thus, the seven seals,
representing all power given to the Lamb; the seven trumpets, by
which the world kingdoms are shaken and overthrown, and the Lamb's
kingdom ushered in; and the seven vials, by which the beast's
kingdom is destroyed.
2. strong-- (Ps 103:20). His voice penetrated heaven, earth, and Hades (Re 10:1-3).
3. no man--Greek, "no one." Not merely no
man, but also no one of any order of beings.
in earth--Greek, "upon the earth."
under the earth--namely, in Hades.
look thereon--to look upon the contents, so as to read them.
4. and to read--inserted in English Version Greek text without good authority. One oldest manuscript, ORIGEN, CYPRIAN, and HILARY omit the clause. "To read" would be awkward standing between "to open the book" and "to look thereon." John having been promised a revelation of "things which must be hereafter," weeps now at his earnest desire being apparently frustrated. He is a pattern to us to imitate, as an eager and teachable learner of the Apocalypse.
5. one of--Greek, "one from among." The "elder" meant is,
according to some (in LYRA), Matthew. With this
accords the description here given of Christ, "the Lion, which
is (so the Greek) of the tribe of Juda, the root of David"; the
royal, David-descended, lion-aspect of Christ being that prominent in
Matthew, whence the lion among the fourfold cherubim is commonly
assigned to him. GERHARD in BENGEL thought Jacob to be meant, being, doubtless, one
of those who rose with Christ and ascended to heaven
(Mt 27:52, 53).
The elders in heaven round God's throne know better than John, still in
the flesh, the far-reaching power of Christ.
Root of David--
(Isa 11:1, 10).
Not merely "a sucker come up from David's ancient root" (as
ALFORD limits it), but also including the idea of
His being Himself the root and origin of David: compare these two
truths brought together,
Mt 22:42-45.
Hence He is called not merely Son of David, but also
David. He is at once "the branch" of David, and "the root" of
David, David's Son and David's Lord, the Lamb slain and
therefore the Lion of Juda: about to reign over Israel, and
thence over the whole earth.
prevailed--Greek, "conquered": absolutely, as elsewhere
(Re 3:21):
gained the victory: His past victory over all the powers of
darkness entitles Him now to open the book.
to open--that is, so as to open. One oldest manuscript,
B, reads, "He that openeth," that is, whose office it is to open, but
the weight of oldest authorities is with English Version
reading, namely, A, Vulgate, Coptic, and ORIGEN.
6. I beheld, and, lo--One oldest manuscript, A, omits "and, lo."
Another, B, CYPRIAN, &c., support, "and, lo," but
omit, "and I beheld."
in the midst of the throne--that is, not on the throne
(compare
Re 5:7),
but in the midst of the company
(Re 4:4)
which was "round about the throne."
Lamb--Greek, "arnion"; always found in Revelation
exclusively, except in
Joh 21:15
alone: it expresses endearment, namely, the endearing relation
in which Christ now stands to us, as the consequence of His previous
relation as the sacrificial Lamb. So also our relation to Him:
He the precious Lamb, we His dear lambs, one with Him.
BENGEL thinks there is in Greek,
"arnion," the idea of taking the lead of the flock.
Another object of the form Greek, "arnion," the Lamb, is
to put Him in the more marked contrast to Greek,
"therion," the Beast. Elsewhere Greek, "amnos," is
found, applying to Him as the paschal, sacrificial Lamb
(Isa 53:7,
Septuagint;
Joh 1:29, 36;
Ac 8:32;
1Pe 1:19).
as it had been slain--bearing marks of His past death wounds. He
was standing, though bearing the marks of one slain. In the midst of
heavenly glory Christ crucified is still the prominent object.
seven horns--that is, perfect might, "seven" symbolizing
perfection; "horns," might, in contrast to the
horns of the Antichristian world powers,
Re 17:3;
&c.; Da 7:7, 20; 8:3.
seven eyes . . . the seven Spirits . . . sent
forth--So one oldest manuscript, A. But B reads, "being sent
forth." As the seven lamps before the throne represent the
Spirit of God immanent in the Godhead, so the seven eyes of the
Lamb represent the same sevenfold Spirit profluent from the incarnate
Redeemer in His world-wide energy. The Greek for "sent forth,"
apostellomena, or else apestalmenoi, is akin to the term
"apostle," reminding us of the Spirit-impelled labors of Christ's
apostles and minister throughout the world: if the present tense be
read, as seems best, the idea will be that of those labors
continually going on unto the end. "Eyes" symbolize His
all-watchful and wise providence for His Church, and against her
foes.
7. The book lay on the open hand of Him that sat on the throne for any to take who was found worthy [ALFORD]. The Lamb takes it from the Father in token of formal investiture into His universal and everlasting dominion as Son of man. This introductory vision thus presents before us, in summary, the consummation to which all the events in the seals, trumpets, and vials converge, namely, the setting up of Christ's kingdom visibly. Prophecy ever hurries to the grand crisis or end, and dwells on intermediate events only in their typical relation to, and representation of, the end.
8. had taken--Greek, "took."
fell down before the Lamb--who shares worship and the throne
with the Father.
harps--Two oldest manuscripts, A, B, Syriac and
Coptic read, "a harp": a kind of guitar, played with the hand or
a quill.
vials--"bowls" [TREGELLES]; censers.
odours--Greek, "incense."
prayers of saints--as the angel offers their prayers
(Re 8:3)
with incense (compare
Ps 141:2).
This gives not the least sanction to Rome's dogma of our praying to
saints. Though they be employed by God in some way unknown to us
to present our prayers (nothing is said of their interceding for
us), yet we are told to pray only to Him
(Re 19:10; 22:8, 9).
Their own employment is praise (whence they all have
harps): ours is prayer.
9. sung--Greek, "sing": it is their blessed occupation
continually. The theme of redemption is ever new, ever
suggesting fresh thoughts of praise, embodied in the "new song."
us to God--So manuscript B, Coptic, Vulgate, and CYPRIAN. But A omits "us": and Aleph reads
instead, "to our God."
out of--the present election-church gathered out of the
world, as distinguished from the peoples gathered to Christ as the
subjects, not of an election, but of a general and world-wide
conversion of all nations.
kindred . . . tongue . . . people
. . . nation--The number four marks world-wide
extension: the four quarters of the world. For "kindred," translate as
Greek, "tribe." This term and "people" are usually restricted to
Israel: "tongue and nation" to the Gentiles
(Re 7:9; 11:9; 13:7,
the oldest reading;
Re 14:6).
Thus there is here marked the election-Church gathered from Jews and
Gentiles. In
Re 10:11,
for "tribes," we find among the four terms "kings"; in
Re 17:15,
"multitudes."
10. made us--A, B, Aleph, Vulgate, Syriac, and
Coptic read, "them." The Hebrew construction of the third
person for the first, has a graphic relation to the redeemed,
and also has a more modest sound than us, priests [BENGEL].
unto our God--So B and Aleph read. But A omits the
clause.
kings--So B reads. But A, Aleph, Vulgate, Coptic, and
CYPRIAN, read, "A kingdom." Aleph reads
also "a priesthood" for priests. They who cast their crowns
before the throne, do not call themselves kings in the sight of
the great King
(Re 4:10, 11);
though their priestly access has such dignity that their reigning on
earth cannot exceed it. So in
Re 20:6
they are not called "kings" [BENGEL].
we shall reign on the earth--This is a new feature added to
Re 1:6.
Aleph, Vulgate, and Coptic read, "They shall
reign." A and B read, "They reign." ALFORD
takes this reading and explains it of the Church EVEN
NOW, in Christ her Head, reigning on the earth: "all things are
being put under her feet, as under His; her kingly office and rank are
asserted, even in the midst of persecution." But even if we read (I
think the weightiest authority is against it), "They reign,"
still it is the prophetical present for the future: the seer being
transported into the future when the full number of the redeemed
(represented by the four living creatures) shall be complete and
the visible kingdom begins. The saints do spiritually reign now;
but certainly not as they shall when the prince of this world shall be
bound (see on
Re 20:2-6).
So far from reigning on the earth now, they are "made as the
filth of the world and the offscouring of all things." In
Re 11:15, 18,
the locality and time of the kingdom are marked.
KELLY translates, "reign over the earth"
(Greek, "epi tees gees"), which is justified by the
Greek (Septuagint,
Jud 9:8;
Mt 2:22).
The elders, though ruling over the earth, shall not necessarily
(according to this passage) remain on the earth. But English
Version is justified by
Re 3:10.
"The elders were meek, but the flock of the meek independently
is much larger" [BENGEL].
11. I beheld--the angels: who form the outer circle, while the
Church, the object of redemption, forms the inner circle nearest the
throne. The heavenly hosts ranged around gaze with intense love and
adoration at this crowning manifestation of God's love, wisdom, and
power.
ten thousand times ten thousand--Greek, "myriads of
myriads."
12. to receive power--Greek, "the power." The
remaining six (the whole being seven, the number for
perfection and completeness) are all, as well as "power,"
ranged under the one Greek article, to mark that they form
one complete aggregate belonging to God and His co-equal, the
Lamb. Compare
Re 7:12,
where each of all seven has the article.
riches--both spiritual and earthly.
blessing--ascribed praise: the will on the creature's
part, though unaccompanied by the power, to return blessing for
blessing conferred [ALFORD].
13. The universal chorus of creation, including the outermost
circles as well as the inner (of saints and angels), winds up the
doxology. The full accomplishment of this is to be when Christ
takes His great power and reigns visibly.
every creature--"all His works in all places of His dominion"
(Ps 103:22).
under the earth--the departed spirits in Hades.
such as are--So B and Vulgate. But A omits this.
in the sea--Greek, "upon the sea": the sea animals
which are regarded as being on the surface [ALFORD].
all that are in them--So Vulgate reads. A omits "all
(things)" here (Greek, "panta"), and reads, "I heard all
(Greek, "pantas") saying": implying the harmonious
concert of all in the four quarters of the universe.
Blessing, &c.--Greek, "the blessing, the
honor, and the glory, and the might to the ages of the
ages." The fourfold ascription indicates world-wide
universality.
14. said--So A, Vulgate, and Syriac read. But B
and Coptic read, "(I heard) saying."
Amen--So A reads. But B reads, "the (accustomed) Amen."
As in
Re 4:11,
the four and twenty elders asserted God's worthiness to receive the
glory, as having created all things, so here the four living
creatures ratify by their "Amen" the whole creation's ascription
of the glory to Him.
four and twenty--omitted in the oldest manuscripts:
Vulgate supports it.
him that liveth for ever and ever--omitted in all the
manuscripts: inserted by commentators from
Re 4:9.
But there, where the thanksgiving is expressed, the words are
appropriate; but here less so, as their worship is that of silent
prostration. "Worshipped" (namely, God and the Lamb). So in
Re 11:1,
"worship" is used absolutely.
CHAPTER 6
Re 6:1-17. THE OPENING OF THE FIRST SIX OF THE SEVEN SEALS.
Compare Note, see on Re 5:1. Many (MEDE, FLEMING, NEWTON, &c.) hold that all these seals have been fulfilled, the sixth having been so by the overthrow of paganism and establishment of Christianity under Constantine's edict, A.D. 312. There can, however, be no doubt that at least the sixth seal is future, and is to be at the coming again of Christ. The great objection to supposing the seals to be finally and exhaustively fulfilled (though, probably, particular events may be partial fulfilments typical of the final and fullest one), is that, if so, they ought to furnish (as the destruction of Jerusalem, according to Christ's prophecy, does) a strong external evidence of Revelation. But it is clear they cannot be used for this, as hardly any two interpreters of this school are agreed on what events constitute the fulfilment of each seal. Probably not isolated facts, but classes of events preparing the way for Christ's coming kingdom, are intended by the opening of the seals. The four living creatures severally cry at the opening of the first four seals, "Come," which fact marks the division of the seven, as often occurs in this sacred number, into four and three.
1. one of the seals--The oldest manuscripts, A, B, C,
Vulgate, and Syriac read, "one of the seven
seals."
noise--The three oldest manuscripts read this in the nominative
or dative, not the genitive, as English Version, "I heard one
from among the four living creatures saying, as (it were) the
voice (or, 'as with the voice') of thunder." The first
living creature was like a lion
(Re 4:7):
his voice is in consonance. Implying the lion-like boldness with which,
in the successive great revivals, the faithful have testified for
Christ, and especially a little before His coming shall testify.
Or, rather, their earnestness in praying for Christ's coming.
Come and see--One oldest manuscript, B, has "And see." But A, C,
and Vulgate reject it. ALFORD rightly
objects to English Version reading: "Whither was John to come?
Separated as he was by the glassy sea from the throne, was he to cross
it?" Contrast the form of expression,
Re 10:8.
It is much more likely to be the cry of the redeemed to the Redeemer,
"Come" and deliver the groaning creature from the bondage of
corruption. Thus,
Re 6:2
is an answer to the cry, went (literally, "came") forth
corresponding to "Come." "Come," says GROTIUS, is
the living creature's address to John, calling his earnest
attention. But it seems hard to see how "Come" by itself can mean
this. Compare the only other places in Revelation where it is used,
Re 4:1; 22:17.
If the four living creatures represent the four Gospels, the "Come"
will be their invitation to everyone (for it is not written that they
addressed John) to accept Christ's salvation while there
is time, as the opening of the seals marks a progressive step towards
the end (compare
Re 22:17).
Judgments are foretold as accompanying the preaching of the Gospel
as a witness to all nations
(Re 14:6-11;
Mt 24:6-14).
Thus the invitation, "Come," here, is aptly parallel to
Mt 24:14.
The opening of the first four seals is followed by judgments
preparatory for His coming. At the opening of the fifth seal, the
martyrs above express the same
(Re 6:9, 10;
compare
Zec 1:10).
At the opening of the sixth seal, the Lord's coming is ushered in with
terrors to the ungodly. At the seventh, the consummation is fully
attained
(Re 11:15).
2. Evidently Christ, whether in person, or by His angel,
preparatory to His coming again, as appears from
Re 19:11, 12.
bow--
(Ps 45:4, 5).
crown--Greek, "stephanos," the garland or wreath
of a conqueror, which is also implied by His white horse,
white being the emblem of victory. In
Re 19:11, 12
the last step in His victorious progress is represented; accordingly
there He wears many diadems (Greek, "diademata";
not merely Greek, "stephanoi," "crowns" or "wreaths"),
and is personally attended by the hosts of heaven. Compare
Zec 1:7-17; 6:1-8;
especially
Re 6:10
below, with
Zec 1:12;
also compare the colors of the four horses.
and to conquer--that is, so as to gain a lasting victory. All
four seals usher in judgments on the earth, as the power which
opposes the reign of Himself and His Church. This, rather than the work
of conversion and conviction, is primarily meant, though doubtless,
secondarily, the elect will be gathered out through His word and His
judgments.
3. and see--omitted in the three oldest manuscripts, A, B, C, and Vulgate.
4. red--the color of blood. The color of the horse in
each case answers to the mission of the rider. Compare
Mt 10:24-36,
"Think not I am come to send peace on earth; I came not to send
peace, but a sword." The white horse of Christ's
bloodless victories is soon followed, through man's perversion of the
Gospel, by the red horse of bloodshed; but this is overruled to
the clearing away of the obstacles to Christ's coming kingdom. The
patient ox is the emblem of the second living creature
who, at the opening of this seal, saith, "Come." The saints amidst
judgments on the earth in patience "endure to the end."
that they should kill--The Greek is indicative future,
"that they may, as they also shall, kill one another."
5. Come and see--The two oldest manuscripts, A, C, and
Vulgate omit "and see." B retains the words.
black--implying sadness and want.
had--Greek, "having."
a pair of balances--the symbol of scarcity of provisions, the
bread being doled out by weight.
6. a voice--Two oldest manuscripts, A, C, read, "as it
were a voice." B reads as English Version. The voice is
heard "in the midst of the four living creatures" (as Jehovah in the
Shekinah-cloud manifested His presence between the cherubim); because
it is only for the sake of, and in connection with, His redeemed, that
God mitigates His judgments on the earth.
A measure--"A chœnix." While making food scarce, do not
make it so much so that a chœnix (about a day's provision of
wheat, variously estimated at two or three pints) shall not be
obtainable "for a penny" (denarius, eight and a half pence of
our money, probably the day's wages of a laborer). Famine
generally follows the sword. Ordinarily, from sixteen to twenty
measures were given for a denarius. The sword, famine, noisome
beasts, and the pestilence, are God's four judgments on the
earth. A spiritual famine, too, may be included in the judgment. The
"Come," in the case of this third seal, is said by the third of the
four living creatures, whose likeness is a man indicative of
sympathy and human compassion for the sufferers. God in it tempers
judgment with mercy. Compare
Mt 24:7,
which indicates the very calamities foretold in these seals, nation
rising against nation (the sword), famines, pestilences
(Re 6:8),
and earthquakes
(Re 6:12).
three measures of barley for a penny--the cheaper and less
nutritious grain, bought by the laborer who could not buy enough wheat
for his family with his day's wages, a denarius, and, therefore, buys
barley.
see thou hurt not the oil, and the wine--the luxuries of life,
rather than necessaries; the oil and wine were to be spared for the
refreshment of the sufferers.
7. and see--supported by B; omitted by A, C, and Vulgate. The fourth living creature, who was "like a flying eagle," introduces this seal; implying high-soaring intelligence, and judgment descending from on high fatally on the ungodly, as the king of birds on his prey.
8. pale--"livid" [ALFORD].
Death--personified.
Hell--Hades personified.
unto them--Death and Hades. So A, C read. But B
and Vulgate read, "to him."
fourth part of the earth--answering to the first four seals; his
portion as one of the four, being a fourth part.
death--pestilence; compare
Eze 14:21
with the four judgments here, the sword, famine, pestilence, and
wild beasts; the famine the consequence of the sword;
pestilence, that of famine; and beasts multiplying by
the consequent depopulation.
with the beasts--Greek, "by"; more direct agency. These
four seals are marked off from the three last, by the four living
creatures introducing them with "Come." The calamities indicated are
not restricted to one time, but extend through the whole period of
Church history to the coming of Christ, before which last great and
terrible day of the Lord they shall reach highest aggravation. The
first seal is the summary, Christ going forth conquering till
all enemies are subdued under Him, with a view to which the judgments
subsequently specified accompany the preaching of the Gospel for a
witness to all nations.
9. The three last seals relate to the invisible, as the first
four to the visible world; the fifth, to the martyrs who have died as
believers; the sixth, to those who have died, or who shall be found at
Christ's coming, unbelievers, namely, "the kings . . . great
men . . . bondman . . . freeman"; the seventh, to
the silence in heaven. The scene changes from earth to heaven; so that
interpretations which make these three last consecutive to the first
four seals, are very doubtful.
I saw--in spirit. For souls are not naturally visible.
under the altar--As the blood of sacrificial victims slain on
the altar was poured at the bottom of the altar, so the souls of
those sacrificed for Christ's testimony are symbolically represented as
under the altar, in heaven; for the life or animal soul
is in the blood, and blood is often represented as crying for
vengeance
(Ge 4:10).
The altar in heaven, antitypical to the altar of sacrifice, is Christ
crucified. As it is the altar that sanctifies the gift, so it is Christ
alone who makes our obedience, and even our sacrifice of life for the
truth, acceptable to God. The sacrificial altar was not in the
sanctuary, but outside; so Christ's literal sacrifice and the
figurative sacrifice of the martyrs took place, not in the heavenly
sanctuary, but outside, here on earth. The only altar in heaven is that
antitypical to the temple altar of incense. The blood of the martyrs
cries from the earth under Christ's cross, whereon they may be
considered virtually to have been sacrificed; their souls cry from
under the altar of incense, which is Christ in heaven, by whom alone
the incense of praise is accepted before God. They are under
Christ, in His immediate presence, shut up unto Him in joyful eager
expectancy until He shall come to raise the sleeping dead. Compare the
language of
2 Maccabees 7:36
as indicating Jewish opinion on the subject. Our brethren who have now
suffered a short pain are dead under (Greek) God's
covenant of everlasting life.
testimony which they held--that is, which they bore, as
committed to them to bear. Compare
Re 12:17,
"Have (same Greek as here) the testimony of Jesus."
10. How long--Greek, "Until when?" As in the parable the
woman (symbol of the Church) cries day and night to the unjust
judge for justice against her adversary who is always oppressing her
(compare below,
Re 12:10);
so the elect (not only on earth, but under Christ's covering,
and in His presence in Paradise) cry day and night to God, who
will assuredly, in His own time, avenge His and their cause, "though He
bear long with them." These passages need not be
restricted to some particular martyrdoms, but have been, and are
receiving, and shall receive partial fulfilments, until their last
exhaustive fulfilment before Christ's coming. So as to the other events
foretold here. The glory even of those in Paradise will only be
complete when Christ's and the Church's foes are cast out, and the
earth will become Christ's kingdom at His coming to raise the sleeping
saints.
Lord--Greek, "Master"; implying that He has them and
their foes and all His creatures as absolutely at His disposal, as a
master has his slaves; hence, in
Re 6:11,
"fellow servants," or fellow slaves follows.
holy--Greek, "the Holy one."
avenge--"exact vengeance for our blood."
on--Greek, "from them."
that dwell on the earth--the ungodly, of earth, earthly, as
distinguished from the Church, whose home and heart are even now in
heavenly places.
11. white robes--The three oldest manuscripts, A, B, C, read, "A
white robe was given."
every one of--One oldest manuscript, B, omits this. A and C
read, "unto them, unto each," that is, unto them severally. Though
their joint cry for the riddance of the earth from the ungodly is not
yet granted, it is intimated that it will be so in due time; meanwhile,
individually they receive the white robe, indicative of light,
joy, and triumphant victory over their foes; even as the Captain of
their salvation goes forth on a white horse conquering and to
conquer; also of purity and sanctity through Christ. MAIMONIDES says that the Jews used to array priests, when
approved of, in white robes; thus the sense is, they are
admitted among the blessed ones, who, as spotless priests, minister
unto God and the Lamb.
should--So C reads. But A and B, "shall rest."
a little season--One oldest manuscript, B, omits "little." A and
C support it. Even if it be omitted, is it to be inferred that the
"season" is short as compared with eternity? BENGEL fancifully made a season (Greek,
"chronus," the word here used) to be one thousand one hundred
and eleven one-ninth years, and a time
(Re 12:12, 14,
Greek, "kairos") to be a fifth of a season, that
is, two hundred and twenty-two two-ninths years. The only distinction
in the Greek is, a season (Greek,
"chronus") is a sort of aggregate of times. Greek,
"kairos," a specific time, and so of short duration. As to their
rest, compare
Re 14:13
(the same Greek, "anapauomai");
Isa 57:2;
Da 12:13.
until their . . . brethren . . . be
fulfilled--in number. Until their full number shall have been
completed. The number of the elect is definitely fixed: perhaps to fill
up that of the fallen angels. But this is mere conjecture. The
full blessedness and glory of all the saints shall be
simultaneous. The earlier shall not anticipate the later saints. A and
C read, "shall have been accomplished"; B and Aleph read, "shall
have accomplished (their course)."
12. As
Re 6:4, 6-8,
the sword, famine, and pestilence, answer to
Mt 24:6, 7;
Re 6:9, 10,
as to martyrdoms, answer to
Mt 24:9, 10;
so this passage,
Re 6:12, 17,
answers to
Mt 24:29, 30,
"the sun shall be darkened, and the moon shall not give her light, and
the stars shall fall from heaven; . . . then shall all the
tribes of the earth mourn, and they shall see the Son of man coming";
imagery describing the portents of the immediate coming of the
day of the Lord; but not the coming itself until the elect are
sealed, and the judgments invoked by the martyrs descend on the earth,
the sea, and the trees
(Re 7:1-3).
and, lo--So A reads. But B and C omit "lo."
earthquake--Greek, "shaking" of the heavens, the
sea, and the dry land; the shaking of these mutable things being the
necessary preliminary to the setting up of those things which cannot
be shaken. This is one of the catchwords
[WORDSWORTH] connecting the sixth seal with the
sixth trumpet
(Re 11:13)
and the seventh vial
(Re 16:17-21);
also the seventh seal
(Re 8:5).
sackcloth--One kind, made of the "hair" of Cilician goats, was
called "cilicium," or Cilician cloth, and was used for tents, &c. Paul,
a Cilician, made such tents
(Ac 18:3).
moon--A, B, C, and oldest versions read, "the whole moon"; the
full moon; not merely the crescent moon.
as blood--
(Joe 2:31).
13. stars . . . fell . . . as a fig tree casteth her . . . figs-- (Isa 34:4; Na 3:12). The Church shall be then ripe for glorification, the Antichristian world for destruction, which shall be accompanied with mighty phenomena in nature. As to the stars falling to the earth, Scripture describes natural phenomena as they would appear to the spectator, not in the language of scientific accuracy; and yet, while thus adapting itself to ordinary men, it drops hints which show that it anticipates the discoveries of modern science.
14. departed--Greek, "was separated from" its
place; "was made to depart." Not as ALFORD,
"parted asunder"; for, on the contrary, it was rolled
together as a scroll which had been open is rolled up and laid
aside. There is no "asunder one from another" here in the Greek,
as in
Ac 15:39,
which ALFORD copies.
mountain . . . moved out of . . . places--
(Ps 121:1,
Margin;
Jer 3:23; 4:24;
Na 1:5).
This total disruption shall be the precursor of the new earth, just as
the pre-Adamic convulsions prepared it for its present occupants.
15. kings . . . hid themselves--Where was now the
spirit of those whom the world has so greatly feared? [BENGEL].
great men--statesmen and high civil officers.
rich men . . . chief captains--The three oldest
manuscripts, A, B, C, transpose thus, "chief captains . . .
rich men."
mighty--The three oldest manuscripts, A, B, and C read, "strong"
physically
(Ps 33:16).
in--literally "into"; ran into, so as to hide
themselves in.
dens--"caves."
16. from the face-- (Ps 34:16). On the whole verse, compare Ho 10:8; Lu 23:30.
17. Literally, "the day, the great (day)," which can only mean
the last great day. After the Lord has exhausted all His ordinary
judgments, the sword, famine, pestilence, and wild beasts, and still
sinners are impenitent, the great day of the Lord itself' shall come.
Mt 24:6-29
plainly forms a perfect parallelism to the six seals, not only in the
events, but also in the order of their occurrence:
Mt 24:3,
the first seal;
Mt 24:6,
the second seal;
Mt 24:7,
the third seal;
Mt 24:7,
end, the fourth seal;
Mt 24:9,
the fifth seal, the persecutions and abounding iniquity under which, as
well as consequent judgments accompanied with gospel preaching to all
nations as a witness, are particularly detailed,
Mt 24:9-28;
Mt 24:29,
the sixth seal.
to stand--to stand justified, and not condemned before the
Judge. Thus the sixth seal brings us to the verge of the Lord's
coming. The ungodly "tribes of the earth" tremble at the signs of His
immediate approach. But before He actually inflicts the blow in person,
"the elect" must be "gathered "out.
CHAPTER 7
Re 7:1-17. SEALING OF THE ELECT OF ISRAEL. THE COUNTLESS MULTITUDE OF THE GENTILE ELECT.
1. And--so B and Syriac. But A, C, Vulgate, and
Coptic omit "and."
after these things--A, B, C, and Coptic read, "after
this." The two visions in this chapter come in as an episode
after the sixth seal, and before the seventh seal. It is clear
that, though "Israel" may elsewhere designate the spiritual Israel,
"the elect (Church) on earth" [ALFORD], here,
where the names of the tribes one by one are specified, these names
cannot have any but the literal meaning. The second advent will be the
time of the restoration of the kingdom to Israel, when the
times of the Gentiles shall have been fulfilled, and the Jews shall
at last say, "Blessed is He that cometh in the name of the Lord." The
period of the Lord's absence has been a blank in the history of the
Jews as a nation. As then Revelation is the Book of the Second Advent
[DE BURGH], naturally mention
of God's restored favor to Israel occurs among the events that usher in
Christ's advent.
earth . . . sea . . . tree--The judgments to
descend on these are in answer to the martyrs' prayer under the
fifth seal. Compare the same judgments under the fifth
trumpet, the sealed being exempt
(Re 9:4).
on any tree--Greek, "against any tree"
(Greek, "epi ti dendron": but "on the earth,"
Greek, "epi tees gees").
2. from the east--Greek, "the rising of the sun." The quarter from which God's glory oftenest manifests itself.
3. Hurt not--by letting loose the destructive winds.
till we have sealed the servants of our God--parallel to
Mt 24:31,
"His angels . . . shall gather together His elect from the
four winds." God's love is such, that He cannot do anything in
the way of judgment, till His people are secured from hurt
(Ge 19:22).
Israel, at the eve of the Lord's coming, shall be found re-embodied as
a nation; for its tribes are distinctly specified (Joseph, however,
being substituted for Dan; whether because Antichrist is to come from
Dan, or because Dan is to be Antichrist's especial tool [ARETAS, tenth century], compare
Ge 49:17;
Jer 8:16;
Am 8:14;
just as there was a Judas among the Twelve). Out of these tribes a
believing remnant will be preserved from the judgments which shall
destroy all the Antichristian confederacy
(Re 6:12-17),
and shall be transfigured with the elect Church of all nations,
namely, 144,000 (or whatever number is meant by this symbolical
number), who shall faithfully resist the seductions of Antichrist,
while the rest of the nation, restored to Palestine in unbelief, are
his dupes, and at last his victims. Previously to the Lord's judgments
on Antichrist and his hosts, these latter shall destroy
two-thirds of the nation, one-third escaping, and, by the
Spirit's operation through affliction, turning to the Lord, which
remnant shall form the nucleus on earth of the Israelite nation that is
from this time to stand at the head of the millennial nations of the
world. Israel's spiritual resurrection shall be "as life from the dead"
to all the nations. As now a regeneration goes on here and there of
individuals, so there shall then be a regeneration of nations
universally, and this in connection with Christ's coming.
Mt 24:34;
"this generation (the Jewish nation) shall not pass till all these
things be fulfilled," which implies that Israel can no more pass
away before Christ's advent, than Christ's own words can
pass away (the same Greek),
Mt 24:35.
So exactly
Zec 13:8, 9; 14:2-4, 9-21;
compare
Zec 12:2-14; 13:1, 2.
So also
Eze 8:17, 18; 9:1-7,
especially
Eze 9:4.
Compare also
Eze 10:2
with Re 8:5,
where the final judgments actually fall on the earth, with the same
accompaniment, the fire of the altar cast into the earth,
including the fire scattered over the city. So again,
Re 14:1,
the same 144,000 appear on Zion with the Father's name in their
forehead, at the close of the section, the twelfth through fourteenth
chapters, concerning the Church and her foes. Not that the saints are
exempt from trial:
Re 7:14
proves the contrary; but their trials are distinct from the
destroying judgments that fall on the world; from these they are
exempted, as Israel was from the plagues of Egypt, especially from the
last, the Israelite doors having the protecting seal of the blood-mark.
foreheads--the most conspicuous and noblest part of man's body;
on which the helmet, "the hope of salvation," is worn.
4. Twelve is the number of the tribes, and appropriate to
the Church: three by four: three, the divine number,
multiplied by four, the number for world-wide extension. Twelve
by twelve implies fixity and completeness, which is taken a
thousandfold in 144,000. A thousand implies the world
perfectly pervaded by the divine; for it is ten, the world
number, raised to the power of three, the number of God.
of all the tribes--literally, "out of every tribe"; not 144,000
of each tribe, but the aggregate of the twelve thousand from every
tribe.
children--Greek, "sons of Israel."
Re 3:12; 21:12,
are no objection, as ALFORD thinks, to the literal
Israel being meant; for, in consummated glory, still the Church will be
that "built on the foundation of the (Twelve) apostles
(Israelites), Jesus Christ (an Israelite) being the chief
corner-stone." Gentile believers shall have the name of Jerusalem
written on them, in that they shall share the citizenship
antitypical to that of the literal Jerusalem.
5-8. Judah (meaning praise) stands first, as Jesus' tribe. Benjamin, the youngest, is last; and with him is associated second last, Joseph. Reuben, as originally first-born, comes next after Judah, to whom it gave place, having by sin lost its primogeniture right. Besides the reason given above (see on Re 7:2), another akin for the omission of Dan, is, its having been the first to lapse into idolatry (Jud 18:1-31); for which same reason the name Ephraim, also (compare Jud 17:1-3; Ho 4:17), is omitted, and Joseph substituted. Also, it had been now for long almost extinct. Long before, the Hebrews say [GROTIUS], it was reduced to the one family of Hussim, which perished subsequently in the wars before Ezra's time. Hence it is omitted in the fourth through eighth chapters of First Chronicles. Dan's small numbers are joined here to Naphtali's, whose brother he was by the same mother [BENGEL]. The twelve times twelve thousand sealed ones of Israel are the nucleus of transfigured humanity [AUBERLEN], to which the elect Gentiles are joined, "a multitude which no man could number," Re 7:9 (that is, the Church of Jews and Gentiles indiscriminately, in which the Gentiles are the predominant element, Lu 21:24. The word "tribes," Greek, implies that believing Israelites are in this countless multitude). Both are in heaven, yet ruling over the earth, as ministers of blessing to its inhabitants: while upon earth the world of nations is added to the kingdom of Israel. The twelve apostles stand at the head of the whole. The upper and the lower congregation, though distinct, are intimately associated.
9. no man--Greek, "no one."
of all nations--Greek, "OUT OF
every nation." The human race is "one nation" by origin,
but afterwards separated itself into tribes, peoples, and
tongues; hence, the one singular stands first, followed by the
three plurals.
kindreds--Greek, "tribes."
people--Greek, "peoples." The "first-fruits unto the
Lamb," the 144,000
(Re 14:1-4)
of Israel, are followed by a copious harvest of all nations, an
election out of the Gentiles, as the 144,000 are an election out
of Israel (see on
Re 7:3).
white robes--(See on
Re 6:11;
also
Re 3:5, 18; 4:4).
palms in . . . hands--the antitype to Christ's entry
into Jerusalem amidst the palm-bearing multitude. This shall be just
when He is about to come visibly and take possession of His kingdom.
The palm branch is the symbol of joy and triumph. It was used at
the feast of tabernacles, on the fifteenth day of the seventh month,
when they kept feast to God in thanksgiving for the ingathered fruits.
The antitype shall be the completed gathering in of the harvest of the
elect redeemed here described. Compare
Zec 14:16,
whence it appears that the earthly feast of tabernacles will be
renewed, in commemoration of Israel's preservation in her long
wilderness-like sojourn among the nations from which she shall now be
delivered, just as the original typical feast was to commemorate her
dwelling for forty years in booths or tabernacles in the literal
wilderness.
10. cried--Greek, "cry," in the three oldest manuscripts,
A, B, C, Vulgate, Syriac, and Coptic. It is their
continuing, ceaseless employment.
Salvation--literally, "THE salvation"; all
the praise of our salvation be ascribed to our God. At the Lord's entry
into Jerusalem, the type, similarly "salvation" is the cry of the
palm-bearing multitudes. Hosanna means "save us now"; taken from
Ps 118:25,
in which Psalm
(Ps 118:14, 15, 21, 26)
the same connection occurs between salvation, the
tabernacles of the righteous, and the Jews' cry to be repeated
by the whole nation at Christ's coming, "Blessed be He that cometh in
the name of the Lord."
11. The angels, as in
Re 5:11,
in their turn take up the anthem of praise. There it was "many
angels," here it is "all the angels."
stood--"were standing" [ALFORD].
12. Greek, "The blessing, the glory, the wisdom, the thanksgiving, the honor, the power, the might [the doxology is sevenfold, implying its totality and completeness], unto the ages of the ages."
13. answered--namely, to my thoughts; spoke, asking the question
which might have been expected to arise in John's mind from what has
gone before. One of the twenty-four elders, representing the Old and
New Testament ministry, appropriately acts as interpreter of this
vision of the glorified Church.
What, &c.--Greek order, "These which are arrayed in white
robes, WHO are they?"
14. Sir--Greek, "Lord." B, C, Vulgate, Syriac,
Coptic versions, and CYPRIAN read, "My Lord."
A omits "My," as English Version.
thou knowest--taken from
Eze 37:3.
Comparatively ignorant ourselves of divine things, it is well for us to
look upward for divinely communicated knowledge.
came--rather as Greek, "come"; implying that they are
just come.
great tribulation--Greek, "THE great
tribulation"; "the tribulation, the great one," namely, the
tribulation to which the martyrs were exposed under the fifth seal, the
same which Christ foretells as about to precede His coming
(Mt 24:21,
great tribulation), and followed by the same signs as the sixth
seal
(Mt 24:29, 30),
compare
Da 12:1;
including also retrospectively all the tribulation which the
saints of all ages have had to pass through. Thus this seventh chapter
is a recapitulation of the vision of the six seals,
Re 6:1-17,
to fill up the outline there given in that part of it which affects the
faithful of that day. There, however, their number was waiting to be
completed, but here it is completed, and they are seen taken out of the
earth before the judgments on the Antichristian apostasy; with their
Lord, they, and all His faithful witnesses and disciples of past ages,
wait for His coming and their coming to be glorified and reign together
with Him. Meanwhile, in contrast with their previous sufferings, they
are exempt from the hunger, thirst, and scorching heats of their life
on earth
(Re 7:16),
and are fed and refreshed by the Lamb of God Himself
(Re 7:17; 14:1-4, 13);
an earnest of their future perfect blessedness in both body and soul
united
(Re 21:4-6; 22:1-5).
washed . . . robes . . . white in the blood of
. . . Lamb--
(Re 1:5;
Isa 1:18;
Heb 9:14;
1Jo 1:7;
compare
Isa 61:10;
Zec 3:3-5).
Faith applies to the heart the purifying blood; once for all for
justification, continually throughout the life for sanctification.
15. Therefore--because they are so washed white; for without it
they could never have entered God's holy heaven;
Re 22:14,
"Blessed are those who wash their robes (the oldest manuscripts
reading), that they may have right to the tree of life, and may enter
in through the gates into the city";
Re 21:27;
Eph 5:26, 27.
before--Greek, "in the presence of."
Mt 5:8;
1Co 13:12,
"face to face."
throne . . . temple--These are connected because we
can approach the heavenly King only through priestly mediation;
therefore, Christ is at once King and Priest on His throne.
day and night--that is, perpetually; as those approved of as
priests by the Sanhedrim were clothed in white, and kept by turns a
perpetual watch in the temple at Jerusalem; compare as to the singers,
1Ch 9:33,
"day and night";
Ps 134:1.
Strictly "there is no night" in the heavenly sanctuary
(Re 22:5).
in his temple--in what is the heavenly analogue to His temple on
earth, for strictly there is "no temple therein"
(Re 21:22),
"God and the Lamb are the temple" filling the whole, so that there is
no distinction of sacred and secular places; the city is the temple,
and the temple the city. Compare
Re 4:8,
"the four living creatures rest not day and night, saying,
Holy," &c.
shall dwell among them--rather (Greek, "scenosei ep'
autous"), "shall be the tabernacle over them" (compare
Re 21:3;
Le 26:11,
especially
Isa 4:5, 6; 8:14; 25:4;
Eze 37:27).
His dwelling among them is to be understood as a secondary
truth, besides what is expressed, namely, His being their covert. When
once He tabernacled among us as the Word made flesh, He was in
great lowliness; then He shall be in great glory.
16.
(Isa 49:10).
hunger no more--as they did here.
thirst any more--
(Joh 4:13).
the sun--literally, scorching in the East. Also, symbolically,
the sun of persecution.
neither . . . light--Greek, "by no means at all
. . . light" (fall).
heat--as the sirocco.
17. in the midst of the throne--that is, in the middle point in
front of the throne
(Re 5:6).
feed--Greek, "tend as a shepherd."
living fountains of water--A, B, Vulgate, and
CYPRIAN read, (eternal) "life's fountains
of waters." "Living" is not supported by the old authorities.
CHAPTER 8
Re 8:1-13. SEVENTH SEAL. PREPARATION FOR THE SEVEN TRUMPETS. THE FIRST FOUR AND THE CONSEQUENT PLAGUES.
1. was--Greek, "came to pass"; "began to be."
silence in heaven about . . . half an hour--The last
seal having been broken open, the book of God's eternal plan of
redemption is opened for the Lamb to read to the blessed ones in
heaven. The half hour's silence contrasts with the previous
jubilant songs of the great multitude, taken up by the
angels
(Re 7:9-11).
It is the solemn introduction to the employments and enjoyments of the
eternal Sabbath-rest of the people of God, commencing with the Lamb's
reading the book heretofore sealed up, and which we cannot know till
then. In
Re 10:4,
similarly at the eve of the sounding of the seventh trumpet, when the
seven thunders uttered their voices, John is forbidden to write them.
The seventh trumpet
(Re 11:15-19)
winds up God's vast plan of providence and grace in redemption, just as
the seventh seal brings it to the same consummation. So also the
seventh vial,
Re 16:17.
Not that the seven seals, the seven trumpets, and the seven vials,
though parallel, are repetitions. They each trace the course of divine
action up to the grand consummation in which they all meet, under a
different aspect. Thunders, lightnings, an earthquake, and
voices close the seven thunders and the seven seals alike
(compare
Re 8:5,
with Re 11:19).
Compare at the seventh vial, the voices, thunders, lightnings, and
earthquake,
Re 16:18.
The half-hour silence is the brief pause GIVEN
TO JOHN between the preceding vision and
the following one, implying, on the one hand, the solemn introduction
to the eternal sabbatism which is to follow the seventh seal; and, on
the other, the silence which continued during the incense-accompanied
prayers which usher in the first of the seven trumpets
(Re 8:3-5).
In the Jewish temple, musical instruments and singing resounded during
the whole time of the offering of the sacrifices, which formed the
first part of the service. But at the offering of incense, solemn
silence was kept ("My soul waiteth upon God,"
Ps 62:1;
"is silent," Margin;
Ps 65:1,
Margin), the people praying secretly all the time. The
half-hour stillness implies, too, the earnest adoring
expectation with which the blessed spirits and the angels await the
succeeding unfolding of God's judgments. A short space is
implied; for even an hour is so used
(Re 17:12; 18:10, 19).
2. the seven angels--Compare the apocryphal
Tobit 12:15,
"I am Raphael, one of the seven holy angels which present the prayers
of the saints, and which go in and out before the glory of the Holy
One." Compare
Lu 1:19,
"I am Gabriel, that stand in the presence of God."
stood--Greek, "stand."
seven trumpets--These come in during the time while the martyrs
rest until their fellow servants also, that should be killed as they
were, should be fulfilled; for it is the inhabiters of the
earth on whom the judgments fall, on whom also the martyrs prayed
that they should fall
(Re 6:10).
All the ungodly, and not merely some one portion of them, are
meant, all the opponents and obstacles in the way of the kingdom of
Christ and His saints, as is proved by
Re 11:15, 18,
end, at the close of the seven trumpets. The Revelation becomes more
special only as it advances farther
(Re 13:1-18; 16:10; 17:18).
By the seven trumpets the world kingdoms are overturned to make way for
Christ's universal kingdom. The first four are connected together; and
the last three, which alone have Woe, woe, woe
(Re 8:7-13).
3. another angel--not Christ, as many think; for He, in
Revelation, is always designated by one of His proper titles; though,
doubtless, He is the only true High Priest, the Angel of the Covenant,
standing before the golden altar of incense, and there, as Mediator,
offering up His people's prayers, rendered acceptable before God
through the incense of His merit. Here the angel acts merely as a
ministering spirit
(Heb 1:4),
just as the twenty-four elders have vials full of odors, or
incense, which are the prayers of saints
(Re 5:8),
and which they present before the Lamb. How precisely their ministry,
in perfuming the prayers of the saints and offering them on the altar
of incense, is exercised, we know not, but we do know they are not to
be prayed TO. If we send an offering of tribute to
the king, the king's messenger is not allowed to appropriate what is
due to the king alone.
there was given unto him--The angel does not provide the
incense; it is given to him by Christ, whose meritorious
obedience and death are the incense, rendering the saints' prayers well
pleasing to God. It is not the saints who give the angel the incense;
nor are their prayers identified with the incense; nor do they offer
their prayers to him. Christ alone is the Mediator through whom, and
to whom, prayer is to be offered.
offer it with the prayers--rather as Greek, "give
it TO the prayers," so rendering them efficacious
as a sweet-smelling savor to God. Christ's merits alone can thus
incense our prayers, though the angelic ministry be employed to
attach this incense to the prayers. The saints' praying on earth, and
the angel's incensing in heaven, are simultaneous.
all saints--The prayers both of the saints in the heavenly rest,
and of those militant on earth. The martyrs' cry is the foremost, and
brings down the ensuing judgments.
golden altar--antitype to the earthly.
4. the smoke . . . which came with the prayers . . . ascended up--rather, "the smoke of the incense FOR (or 'given TO': 'given' being understood from Re 8:3) the prayers of the saints ascended up, out of the angel's hand, in the presence of Gods" The angel merely burns the incense given him by Christ the High Priest, so that its smoke blends with the ascending prayers of the saints. The saints themselves are priests; and the angels in this priestly ministration are but their fellow servants (Re 19:10).
5. cast it into the earth--that is, unto the earth: the
hot coals off the altar cast on the earth, symbolize God's fiery
judgments about to descend on the Church's foes in answer to the
saints' incense-perfumed prayers which have just ascended before God,
and those of the martyrs. How marvellous the power of the saints'
prayers!
there were--"there took place," or "ensued."
voices, and thunderings, and lightnings--B places the "voices"
after "thunderings." A places it after "lightnings."
6. sound--blow the trumpets.
7. The common feature of the first four trumpets is, the
judgments under them affect natural objects, the accessories of
life, the earth, trees, grass, the sea, rivers, fountains, the light of
the sun, moon, and stars. The last three, the woe-trumpets
(Re 8:13),
affect men's life with pain, death, and hell. The language is evidently
drawn from the plagues of Egypt, five or six out of the ten exactly
corresponding: the hail, the fire
(Ex 9:24),
the WATER turned to blood
(Ex 7:19),
the darkness
(Ex 10:21),
the locusts
(Ex 10:12),
and perhaps the death
(Re 9:18).
Judicial retribution in kind characterizes the inflictions of the first
four, those elements which had been abused punishing their abusers.
mingled with--A, B, and Vulgate read, Greek,
". . . IN blood." So in the case of the
second and third vials
(Re 16:3, 4).
upon the earth--Greek, "unto the earth." A, B,
Vulgate, and Syriac add, "And the third of the earth was
burnt up." So under the third trumpet, the third of the rivers
is affected: also, under the sixth trumpet, the third part of
men are killed. In
Zec 13:8, 9
this tripartite division appears, but the proportions reversed, two
parts killed, only a third preserved. Here, vice versa, two-thirds
escape, one-third is smitten. The fire was the predominant element.
all green grass--no longer a third, but all is burnt
up.
8. as it were--not literally a mountain: a mountain-like burning
mass. There is a plain allusion to
Jer 51:25;
Am 7:4.
third part of the sea became blood--In the parallel second vial,
the whole sea (not merely a third) becomes blood.
The overthrow of Jericho, the type of the Antichristian Babylon, after
which Israel, under Joshua (the same name as Jesus),
victoriously took possession of Canaan, the type of Christ's and His
people's kingdom, is perhaps alluded to in the
SEVEN trumpets, which end in the overthrow
of all Christ's foes, and the setting up of His kingdom. On the
seventh day, at the seventh time, when the seven
priests blew the seven ram's horn trumpets, the people shouted,
and the walls fell flat: and then ensued the blood-shedding of
the foe. A mountain-like fiery mass would not naturally change water
into blood; nor would the third part of ships be thereby
destroyed.
9. The symbolical interpreters take the ships here to be churches. For the Greek here for ships is not the common one, but that used in the Gospels of the apostolic vessel in which Christ taught: and the first churches were in the shape of an inverted ship: and the Greek for destroyed is also used of heretical corruptings (1Ti 6:5).
10. a lamp--a torch.
11. The symbolizers interpret the star fallen from heaven as a chief minister (ARIUS, according to BULLINGER, BENGEL, and others; or some future false teacher, if, as is more likely, the event be still future) falling from his high place in the Church, and instead of shining with heavenly light as a star, becoming a torch lit with earthly fire and smouldering with smoke. And "wormwood," though medicinal in some cases, if used as ordinary water would not only be disagreeable to the taste, but also fatal to life: so "heretical wormwood changes the sweet Siloas of Scripture into deadly Marahs" [WORDSWORTH]. Contrast the converse change of bitter Marah water into sweet, Ex 15:23. ALFORD gives as an illustration in a physical point of view, the conversion of water into firewater or ardent spirits, which may yet go on to destroy even as many as a third of the ungodly in the latter days.
12. third part--not a total obscuration as in the sixth
seal
(Re 6:12, 13).
This partial obscuration, therefore, comes between the prayers
of the martyrs under the fifth seal, and the last overwhelming
judgments on the ungodly under the sixth seal, at the eve of Christ's
coming.
the night likewise--withdrew a third part of the light which the
bright Eastern moon and stars ordinarily afford.
13. an angel--A, B, Vulgate, Syriac, and Coptic
read for "angel," which is supported by none of the oldest manuscripts,
"an eagle": the symbol of judgment descending fatally from on high; the
king of birds pouncing on the prey. Compare this fourth trumpet and the
flying eagle with the fourth seal introduced by the fourth
living creature, "like a flying eagle,"
Re 4:7; 6:7, 8:
the aspect of Jesus as presented by the fourth Evangelist. John
is compared in the cherubim (according to the primitive interpretation)
to a flying eagle: Christ's divine majesty in this similitude is
set forth in the Gospel according to John, His judicial
visitations in the Revelation of John. Contrast "another angel," or
messenger, with "the everlasting Gospel,"
Re 14:6.
through the midst of heaven--Greek, "in the mid-heaven,"
that is, in the part of the sky where the sun reaches the
meridian: in such a position as that the eagle is an object
conspicuous to all.
the inhabiters of the earth--the ungodly, the "men of the
world," whose "portion is in this life," upon whom the martyrs had
prayed that their blood might be avenged
(Re 6:10).
Not that they sought personal revenge, but their zeal was for the honor
of God against the foes of God and His Church.
the other--Greek, "the remaining voices."
CHAPTER 9
Re 9:1-21. THE FIFTH TRUMPET: THE FALLEN STAR OPENS THE ABYSS WHENCE ISSUE LOCUSTS. THE SIXTH TRUMPET. FOUR ANGELS AT THE EUPHRATES LOOSED.
1. The last three trumpets of the seven are called, from
Re 8:13,
the woe-trumpets.
fall--rather as Greek, "fallen." When John saw it, it was
not in the act of falling, but had fallen already. This
is a connecting link of this fifth trumpet with
Re 12:8, 9, 12,
"Woe to the inhabiters of the earth, for the devil is
come down," &c. Compare
Isa 14:12,
"How art thou fallen from heaven, Lucifer, son of the morning!"
the bottomless pit--Greek, "the pit of the abyss";
the orifice of the hell where Satan and his demons dwell.
3. upon--Greek, "unto," or "into."
as the scorpions of the earth--as contrasted with the "locusts"
which come up from hell, and are not "of the earth."
have power--namely, to sting.
4. not hurt the grass . . . neither . . . green
thing . . . neither . . . tree--the food on
which they ordinarily prey. Therefore, not natural and ordinary
locusts. Their natural instinct is supernaturally restrained to mark
the judgment as altogether divine.
those men which--Greek, "the men whosoever."
in, &c.--Greek, "upon their forehead." Thus this
fifth trumpet is proved to follow the sealing in
Re 7:1-8,
under the sixth seal. None of the saints are hurt by these locusts,
which is not true of the saints in Mohammed's attack, who is supposed
by many to be meant by the locusts; for many true believers fell in the
Mohammedan invasions of Christendom.
5. they . . . they--The subject changes: the first
"they" is the locusts; the second is the unsealed.
five months--the ordinary time in the year during which locusts
continue their ravages.
their torment--the torment of the sufferers. This fifth
verse and
Re 9:6
cannot refer to an invading army. For an army would kill, and
not merely torment.
6. shall desire--Greek, "eagerly desire"; set their mind
on.
shall flee--So B, Vulgate, Syriac, and Coptic
read. But A and Aleph read, "fleeth," namely continually. In
Re 6:16,
which is at a later stage of God's judgments, the ungodly seek
annihilation, not from the torment of their suffering, but from fear of
the face of the Lamb before whom they have to stand.
7. prepared unto battle--Greek, "made ready unto war."
Compare Note, see on
Joe 2:4,
where the resemblance of locusts to horses is traced: the plates of a
horse armed for battle are an image on a larger scale of the outer
shell of the locust.
crowns--
(Na 3:17).
ELLIOTT explains this of the turbans of
Mohammedans. But how could turbans be "like gold?"
ALFORD understands it of the head of the locusts
actually ending in a crown-shaped fillet which resembled gold in its
material.
as the faces of men--The "as" seems to imply the locusts here do
not mean men. At the same time they are not natural locusts, for
these do not sting men
(Re 9:5).
They must be supernatural.
8. hair of women--long and flowing. An Arabic proverb compares
the antlers of locusts to the hair of girls. EWALD
in ALFORD understands the allusion to be to the
hair on the legs or bodies of the locusts: compare "rough
caterpillars,"
Jer 51:27.
as the teeth of lions--
(Joe 1:6,
as to locusts).
9. as it were breastplates of iron--not such as forms the thorax
of the natural locust.
as . . . chariots--
(Joe 2:5-7).
battle--Greek, "war."
10. tails like unto scorpions--like unto the tails of
scorpions.
and there were stings--There is no oldest manuscript for this
reading. A, B, Aleph, Syriac, and Coptic read, "and
(they have) stings: and in their tails (is) their power (literally,
'authority': authorized power) to hurt."
11. And--so Syriac. But A, B, and Aleph, omit
"and."
had--Greek, "have."
a king . . . which is the angel--English
Version, agreeing with A, Aleph, reads the (Greek)
article before "angel," in which reading we must translate, "They have
as king over them the angel," &c. Satan (compare
Re 9:1).
Omitting the article with B, we must translate, "They have as king
an angel," &c.: one of the chief demons under Satan: I prefer
from
Re 9:1,
the former.
bottomless pit--Greek, "abyss."
Abaddon--that is, perdition or destruction
(Job 26:6;
Pr 27:20).
The locusts are supernatural instruments in the hands of Satan to
torment, and yet not kill, the ungodly, under this fifth trumpet. Just
as in the case of godly Job, Satan was allowed to torment with
elephantiasis, but not to touch his life. In
Re 9:20,
these two woe-trumpets are expressly called "plagues." ANDREAS OF CÆSAREA,
A.D. 500, held, in his Commentary on
Revelation, that the locusts mean evil spirits again
permitted to come forth on earth and afflict men with various
plagues.
12. Greek, "The one woe."
hereafter--Greek, "after these things." I agree with
ALFORD and DE
BURGH, that these locusts from the abyss
refer to judgments about to fall on the ungodly immediately before
Christ's second advent. None of the interpretations which regard them
as past, are satisfactory.
Joe 1:2-7; 2:1-11,
is strictly parallel and expressly refers
(Joe 2:11)
to THE DAY OF THE LORD GREAT AND
VERY TERRIBLE:
Joe 2:10
gives the portents accompanying the day of the Lord's coming, the
earth quaking, the heavens trembling, the sun, moon, and stars,
withdrawing their shining:
Joe 2:18, 31, 32,
also point to the immediately succeeding deliverance of Jerusalem:
compare also, the previous last conflict in the valley of Jehoshaphat,
and the dwelling of God thenceforth in Zion, blessing Judah. DE BURGH confines the locust
judgment to the Israelite land, even as the sealed in
Re 7:1-8
are Israelites: not that there are not others sealed as elect in the
earth; but that, the judgment being confined to Palestine,
the sealed of Israel alone needed to be expressly excepted from
the visitation. Therefore, he translates throughout, "the land" (that
is, of Israel and Judah), instead of "the earth." I incline to agree
with him.
13. a voice--literally, "one voice."
from--Greek, "out of."
the four horns--A, Vulgate (Amiatinus manuscript),
Coptic, and Syriac omit "four." B and
CYPRIAN support it. The four horns together
gave forth their voice, not diverse, but one. God's revelation
(for example, the Gospel), though in its aspects fourfold (four
expressing world-wide extension: whence four is the
number of the Evangelists), still has but one and the same voice.
However, from the parallelism of this sixth trumpet to the fifth seal
(Re 6:9, 10),
the martyrs' cry for the avenging of their blood from the altar
reaching its consummation under the sixth seal and sixth trumpet, I
prefer understanding this cry from the four corners of the altar
to refer to the saints' prayerful cry from the four quarters of the
world, incensed by the angel, and ascending to God from the
golden altar of incense, and bringing down in consequence fiery
judgments. Aleph omits the whole clause, "one from the four
horns."
14. in, &c.--Greek, "epi to potamo"; "on," or "at
the great river."
Euphrates--(Compare
Re 16:12).
The river whereat Babylon, the ancient foe of God's people was
situated. Again, whether from the literal region of the Euphrates, or
from the spiritual Babylon (the apostate Church, especially
ROME), four angelic ministers of God's judgments
shall go forth, assembling an army of horsemen throughout the four
quarters of the earth, to slay a third of men, the brunt of the
visitation shall be on Palestine.
15. were--"which had been prepared"
[TREGELLES rightly].
for an hour, and a day, and a month, and a year--rather as
Greek, "for (that is, against) THE hour,
and day, and month, and year," namely, appointed by God. The
Greek article (teen), put once only before all the
periods, implies that the hour in the day, and the day in the month,
and the month in the year, and the year itself, had been definitely
fixed by God. The article would have been omitted had a sum-total of
periods been specified, namely, three hundred ninety-one years and one
month (the period from A.D. 1281, when the Turks
first conquered the Christians, to 1672, their last conquest of them,
since which last date their empire has declined).
slay--not merely to "hurt"
(Re 9:10),
as in the fifth trumpet.
third part--(See on
Re 8:7-12).
of men--namely, of earthy men,
Re 8:13,
"inhabiters of the earth," as distinguished from God's sealed people
(of which the sealed of Israel,
Re 7:1-8,
form the nucleus).
16. Compare with these two hundred million,
Ps 68:17;
Da 7:10.
The hosts here are evidently, from their numbers and their appearance
(Re 9:17),
not merely human hosts, but probably infernal, though
constrained to work out God's will (compare
Re 9:1, 2).
and I heard--A, B, Aleph, Vulgate, Syriac, Coptic, and
CYPRIAN omit "and."
17. thus--as follows.
of fire--the fiery color of the breastplates answering to
the fire which issued out of their mouths.
of jacinth--literally, "of hyacinth color," the hyacinth of the
ancients answering to our dark blue iris: thus, their dark,
dull-colored breastplates correspond to the smoke out of
their mouths.
brimstone--sulphur-colored: answering to the
brimstone or sulphur out of their mouths.
18. By these three--A, B, C, and Aleph read (apo
for kupo), "From"; implying the direction whence the
slaughter came; not direct instrumentality as "by" implies. A, B, C,
Aleph also add "plagues" after "three." English Version
reading, which omits it, is not well supported.
by the fire--Greek, "owing to the fire,"
literally, "out of."
19. their--A, B, C and Aleph read, "the power of the
horses."
in their mouth--whence issued the fire, smoke, and
brimstone
(Re 9:17).
Many interpreters understand the horsemen to refer to the
myriads of Turkish cavalry arrayed in scarlet, blue, and yellow
(fire, hyacinth, and brimstone), the lion-headed
horses denoting their invincible courage, and the fire and
brimstone out of their mouths, the gunpowder and artillery
introduced into Europe about this time, and employed by the Turks; the
tails, like serpents, having a venomous sting, the false religion of
Mohammed supplanting Christianity, or, as ELLIOTT
thinks, the Turkish pachas' horse tails, worn as a symbol of authority.
(!) All this is very doubtful. Considering the parallelism of this
sixth trumpet to the sixth seal, the likelihood is that events are
intended immediately preceding the Lord's coming. "The false prophet"
(as
Isa 9:15
proves), or second beast, having the horns of a lamb, but speaking as
the dragon, who supports by lying miracles the final Antichrist,
seems to me to be intended. Mohammed, doubtless, is a forerunner of
him, but not the exhaustive fulfiller of the prophecy here: Satan will,
probably, towards the end, bring out all the powers of hell for the
last conflict (see on
Re 9:20,
on "devils"; compare
Re 9:1, 2, 17, 18).
with them--with the serpent heads and their venomous fangs.
20. the rest of the men--that is, the ungodly.
yet--So A, Vulgate, Syriac, and Coptic. B and
Aleph read, "did not even repent of," namely, so as to
give up "the works," &c. Like Pharaoh hardening his heart against
repentance notwithstanding the plagues.
of their hands--
(De 31:29).
Especially the idols made by their hands. Compare
Re 13:14, 15,
"the image of the beast"
Re 19:20.
that they should not--So B reads. But A, C, and Aleph
read "that they shall not": implying a prophecy of certainty
that it shall be so.
devils--Greek, "demons" which lurk beneath the idols
which idolaters worship.
21. sorceries--witchcrafts by means of drugs (so the
Greek). One of the fruits of the unrenewed flesh: the sin of
the heathen: about to be repeated by apostate Christians in the last
days,
Re 22:15,
"sorcerers." The heathen who shall have rejected the proffered Gospel
and clung to their fleshly lusts, and apostate Christians who shall
have relapsed into the same shall share the same terrible judgments.
The worship of images was established in the East in A.D. 842.
fornication--singular: whereas the other sins are in the plural.
Other sins are perpetrated at intervals: those lacking purity of heart
indulge in one perpetual fornication
[BENGEL].
CHAPTER 10
Re 10:1-11. VISION OF THE LITTLE BOOK.
As an episode was introduced between the sixth and seventh seals, so there is one here (Re 10:1-11:14) after the sixth and introductory to the seventh trumpet (Re 11:15, which forms the grand consummation). The Church and her fortunes are the subject of this episode: as the judgments on the unbelieving inhabiters of the earth (Re 8:13) were the exclusive subject of the fifth and sixth woe-trumpets. Re 6:11 is plainly referred to in Re 10:6 below; in Re 6:11 the martyrs crying to be avenged were told they must "rest yet for a little season" or time: in Re 10:6 here they are assured, "There shall be no longer (any interval of) time"; their prayer shall have no longer to wait, but (Re 10:7) at the trumpet sounding of the seventh angel shall be consummated, and the mystery of God (His mighty plan heretofore hidden, but then to be revealed) shall be finished. The little open book (Re 10:2, 9, 10) is given to John by the angel, with a charge (Re 10:11) that he must prophesy again concerning (so the Greek) peoples, nations, tongues, and kings: which prophecy (as appears from Re 11:15-19) affects those peoples, nations, tongues, and kings only in relation to ISRAEL AND THE CHURCH, who form the main object of the prophecy.
1. another mighty angel--as distinguished from the mighty
angel who asked as to the former and more comprehensive book
(Re 5:2),
"Who is worthy to open the book?"
clothed with a cloud--the emblem of God coming in judgment.
a--A, B, C, and Aleph read "the"; referring to
(Re 4:3)
the rainbow already mentioned.
rainbow upon his head--the emblem of covenant mercy to God's
people, amidst judgments on God's foes. Resumed from
Re 4:3
(see on
Re 4:3).
face as . . . the sun--
(Re 1:16; 18:1).
feet as pillars of fire--
(Re 1:15;
Eze 1:7).
The angel, as representative of Christ, reflects His glory and bears
the insignia attributed in
Re 1:15, 16; 4:3,
to Christ Himself. The pillar of fire by night led Israel
through the wilderness, and was the symbol of God's presence.
2. he had--Greek, "Having."
in his hand--in his left hand: as in
Re 10:5
(see on
Re 10:5),
he lifts up his right hand to heaven.
a little book--a roll little in comparison with the
"book"
(Re 5:1)
which contained the whole vast scheme of God's purposes, not to
be fully read till the final consummation. This other, a less
book, contained only a portion which John was now to make his own
(Re 10:9, 11),
and then to use in prophesying to others. The New Testament begins with
the word "book" (Greek, "biblus"), of which "the little
book" (Greek, "biblaridion") is the diminutive, "the
little bible," the Bible in miniature.
upon the sea . . . earth--Though the beast with seven
heads is about to arise out of the sea
(Re 13:1),
and the beast with two horns like a lamb
(Re 13:11)
out of the earth, yet it is but for a time, and that time
shall no longer be
(Re 10:6, 7)
when once the seventh trumpet is about to sound; the angel with
his right foot on the sea, and his left on the earth, claims both as
God's, and as about soon to be cleared of the usurper and his
followers.
3. as . . . lion--Christ, whom the angel represents,
is often so symbolized
(Re 5:5,
"the Lion of the tribe of Juda").
seven thunders--Greek, "the seven thunders." They
form part of the Apocalyptic symbolism; and so are marked by the
article as well known. Thus thunderings marked the
opening of the seventh seal
(Re 8:1, 5);
so also at the seventh vial
(Re 16:17, 18).
WORDSWORTH calls this the prophetic use of the
article; "the thunders, of which more hereafter." Their full
meaning shall be only known at the grand consummation marked by the
seventh seal, the seventh trumpet
(Re 11:19),
and the seventh vial.
uttered their--Greek, "spake their own voices";
that is, voices peculiarly their own, and not now revealed to
men.
4. when--Aleph reads, "Whatsoever things." But most
manuscripts support English Version.
uttered their voices--A, B, C, and Aleph omit "their
voices." Then translate, "had spoken."
unto me--omitted by A, B, C, Aleph, and Syriac.
Seal up--the opposite command to
Re 22:20.
Even though at the time of the end the things sealed in
Daniel's time were to be revealed, yet not so the voices of these
thunders. Though heard by John, they were not to be imparted by him to
others in this book of Revelation; so terrible are they that God in
mercy withholds them, since "sufficient unto the day is the evil
thereof." The godly are thus kept from morbid ponderings over the evil
to come; and the ungodly are not driven by despair into utter
recklessness of life. ALFORD adds another aim in
concealing them, namely, "godly fear, seeing that the arrows of God's
quiver are not exhausted." Besides the terrors foretold, there are
others unutterable and more horrifying lying in the background.
5. lifted up his hand--So A and Vulgate read. But B, C, Aleph, Syriac, and Coptic, ". . . his right hand." It was customary to lift up the hand towards heaven, appealing to the God of truth, in taking a solemn oath. There is in this part of the vision an allusion to Da 12:1-13. Compare Re 10:4, with Da 12:4, 9; and Re 10:5, 6, end, with Da 12:7. But there the angel clothed in linen, and standing upon the waters, sware "a time, times, and a half" were to interpose before the consummation; here, on the contrary, the angel standing with his left foot on the earth, and his right upon the sea, swears there shall be time no longer. There he lifted up both hands to heaven; here he has the little book now open (whereas in Daniel the book is sealed) in his left hand (Re 10:2), and he lifts up only his right hand to heaven.
6. liveth for ever and ever--Greek, "liveth unto the ages
of the ages" (compare
Da 12:7).
created heaven . . . earth . . . sea,
&c.--This detailed designation of God as the Creator, is appropriate to
the subject of the angel's oath, namely, the consummating of the
mystery of God
(Re 10:7),
which can surely be brought to pass by the same Almighty power that
created all things, and by none else.
that there should be time no longer--Greek, "that time
(that is, an interval of time) no longer shall be." The martyrs shall
have no longer a time to wait for the accomplishment of their prayers
for the purgation of the earth by the judgments which shall remove
their and God's foes from it
(Re 6:11).
The appointed season or time of delay is at an end (the
same Greek is here as in
Re 6:11,
chronus). Not as English Version implies, Time shall end
and eternity begin.
7. But--connected with
Re 10:6.
"There shall be no longer time (that is, delay), but in the days
of the voice of the seventh angel, when he is about to (so the
Greek) sound his trumpet (so the Greek), then (literally,
'also'; which conjunction often introduces the consequent member of a
sentence) the mystery of God is finished," literally, "has been
finished"; the prophet regarding the future as certain as if it were
past. A, C, Aleph, and Coptic read the past tense
(Greek, "etelesthee"). B reads, as English
Version, the future tense (Greek, "telesthee").
"should be finished" (compare
Re 11:15-18).
Sweet consolation to the waiting saints! The seventh trumpet shall be
sounded without further delay.
the mystery of God--the theme of the "little book," and so of
the remainder of the Apocalypse. What a grand contrast to the "mystery
of iniquity Babylon!" The mystery of God's scheme of redemption, once
hidden in God's secret counsel and dimly shadowed forth in types and
prophecies, but now more and more clearly revealed according as the
Gospel kingdom develops itself, up to its fullest consummation at the
end. Then finally His servants shall praise Him most fully, for the
glorious consummation of the mystery in having taken to Himself and His
saints the kingdom so long usurped by Satan and the ungodly. Thus this
verse is an anticipation of
Re 11:15-18.
declared to--Greek, "declared the glad tidings to." "The
mystery of God" is the Gospel glad tidings. The office of the
prophets is to receive the glad tidings from God, in order
to declare them to others. The final consummation is the great
theme of the Gospel announced to, and by, the prophets (compare
Ga 3:8).
8. spake . . . and said--So Syriac and
Coptic read. But A, B, C, "(I heard) again speaking with me, and
saying" (Greek, "lalousan . . . legousan").
little book--So Aleph and B read. But A and C, "the
book."
9. I went--Greek, "I went away." John here leaves
heaven, his standing-point of observation heretofore, to be near the
angel standing on the earth and sea.
Give--A, B, C, and Vulgate read the infinitive, "Telling
him to give."
eat it up--appropriate its contents so entirely as to be
assimilated with (as food), and become part of thyself, so as to impart
them the more vividly to others. His finding the roll sweet to the
taste at first, is because it was the Lord's will he was doing, and
because, divesting himself of carnal feeling, he regarded God's will as
always agreeable, however bitter might be the message of judgment to be
announced. Compare
Ps 40:8,
Margin, as to Christ's inner complete appropriation of God's
word.
thy belly bitter--parallel to
Eze 2:10,
"There was written therein lamentations, and mourning, and woe."
as honey--
(Ps 19:10; 119:103).
Honey, sweet to the mouth, sometimes turns into bile in the stomach.
The thought that God would be glorified
(Re 11:3-6, 11-18)
gave him the sweetest pleasure. Yet, afterwards the belly, or
carnal natural feeling, was embittered with grief at the prophecy of
the coming bitter persecutions of the Church
(Re 11:7-10);
compare
Joh 16:1, 2.
The revelation of the secrets of futurity is sweet to one at
first, but bitter and distasteful to our natural man, when we
learn the cross which is to be borne before the crown shall be won.
John was grieved at the coming apostasy and the sufferings of the
Church at the hands of Antichrist.
10. the little book--So A and C, but B, Aleph, and
Vulgate, "the book."
was bitter--Greek, "was embittered."
11. he said--A, B, and Vulgate read, "they say
unto me"; an indefinite expression for "it was said unto me."
Thou must--The obligation lies upon thee, as the servant of God,
to prophesy at His command.
again--as thou didst already in the previous part of this book
of Revelation.
before, &c.--rather as Greek (epilaois),
"concerning many peoples," &c., namely, in their relation to the
Church. The eating of the book, as in Ezekiel's case, marks John's
inauguration to his prophetical office--here to a fresh stage in it,
namely, the revealing of the things which befall the holy city and the
Church of God--the subject of the rest of the book.
CHAPTER 11
Re 11:1-19. MEASUREMENT OF THE TEMPLE. THE TWO WITNESSES' TESTIMONY: THEIR DEATH, RESURRECTION, AND ASCENSION: THE EARTHQUAKE: THE THIRD WOE: THE SEVENTH TRUMPET USHERS IN CHRIST'S KINGDOM. THANKSGIVING OF THE TWENTY-FOUR ELDERS.
This eleventh chapter is a compendious summary of, and introduction to, the more detailed prophecies of the same events to come in the twelfth through twentieth chapters. Hence we find anticipatory allusions to the subsequent prophecies; compare Re 11:7, "the beast that ascendeth out of the bottomless pit" (not mentioned before), with the detailed accounts, Re 13:1, 11; 17:8; also Re 11:8, "the great city," with Re 14:8; 17:1, 5; 18:10.
1. and the angel stood--omitted in A, Vulgate, and
Coptic. Supported by B and Syriac. If it be omitted, the
"reed" will, in construction, agree with "saying." So
WORDSWORTH takes it. The reed, the canon of
Scripture, the measuring reed of the Church, our rule of faith,
speaks. So in
Re 16:7
the altar is personified as speaking (compare
Note, see on
Re 16:7).
The Spirit speaks in the canon of Scripture (the word canon is
derived from Hebrew, "kaneh," "a reed," the word here
used; and John it was who completed the canon). So VICTORINUS, AQUINAS, and VITRINGA. "Like a rod," namely, straight: like a rod
of iron
(Re 2:27),
unbending, destroying all error, and that "cannot be broken."
Re 2:27;
Heb 1:8,
Greek, "a rod of straightness," English Version, "a
scepter of righteousness"; this is added to guard against it being
thought that the reed was one "shaken by the wind" In the abrupt
style of the Apocalypse, "saying" is possibly indefinite, put for
"one said." Still WORDSWORTH'S view agrees
best with Greek. So the ancient commentator, ANDREAS OF CÆSAREA, in the end
of the fifth century (compare Notes, see on
Re 11:3, 4).
the temple--Greek, "naon" (as distinguished from
the Greek, "hieron," or temple in general), the Holy
Place, "the sanctuary."
the altar--of incense; for it alone was in "the sanctuary."
(Greek, "naos"). The measurement of the Holy place seems
to me to stand parallel to the sealing of the elect of Israel under the
sixth seal. God's elect are symbolized by the sanctuary at Jerusalem
(1Co 3:16, 17,
where the same Greek word, "naos," occurs for "temple,"
as here). Literal Israel in Jerusalem, and with the temple restored
(Eze 40:3, 5,
where also the temple is measured with the measuring reed, the
forty-first, forty-second, forty-third, and forty-fourth chapters),
shall stand at the head of the elect Church. The measuring implies at
once the exactness of the proportions of the temple to be restored, and
the definite completeness (not one being wanting) of the numbers of the
Israelite and of the Gentile elections. The literal temple at Jerusalem
shall be the typical forerunner of the heavenly Jerusalem, in which
there shall be all temple, and no portion exclusively set apart
as temple. John's accurately drawing the distinction in
subsequent chapters between God's servants and those who bear the mark
of the beast, is the way whereby he fulfils the direction here given
him to measure the temple. The fact that the temple is
distinguished from them that worship therein, favors the view
that the spiritual temple, the Jewish and Christian Church, is not
exclusively meant, but that the literal temple must also be meant. It
shall be rebuilt on the return of the Jews to their land. Antichrist
shall there put forward his blasphemous claims. The sealed elect of
Israel, the head of the elect Church, alone shall refuse his claims.
These shall constitute the true sanctuary which is here measured, that
is, accurately marked and kept by God, whereas the rest shall yield to
his pretensions. WORDSWORTH objects that, in the
twenty-five passages of the Acts, wherein the Jewish temple is
mentioned, it is called hieron, not naos, and so in the
apostolic Epistles; but this is simply because no occasion for
mentioning the literal Holy Place (Greek, "naos")
occurs in Acts and the Epistles; indeed, in
Ac 7:48,
though not directly, there does occur the term, naos, indirectly
referring to the Jerusalem temple Holy Place. In addressing
Gentile Christians, to whom the literal Jerusalem temple was not
familiar, it was to be expected the term, naos, should not be
found in the literal, but in the spiritual sense. In
Re 11:19
naos is used in a local sense; compare also
Re 14:15, 17; 15:5, 8.
2. But--Greek, "And."
the court . . . without--all outside the Holy
Place
(Re 11:1).
leave out--of thy measurement, literally, "cast out"; reckon as
unhallowed.
it--emphatic. It is not to be measured; whereas the Holy
Place is.
given--by God's appointment.
unto the Gentiles--In the wider sense, there are meant here "the
times of the Gentiles," wherein Jerusalem is "trodden down of
the Gentiles," as the parallel,
Lu 21:24,
proves; for the same word is used here [Greek, "patein"],
"tread under foot." Compare also
Ps 79:1;
Isa 63:18.
forty . . . two months--
(Re 13:5).
The same period as Daniel's "time, times, and half"
(Re 12:14);
and
Re 11:3,
and Re 12:6,
the woman a fugitive in the wilderness "a thousand two hundred and
threescore days." In the wider sense, we may either adopt the year-day
theory of 1260 years (on which, and the papal rule of 1260 years, see
on
Da 7:25;
Da 8:14;
Da 12:11),
or rather, regard the 2300 days
(Da 8:14),
1335 days
(Da 12:11, 12).
1290 days, and 1260 days, as symbolical of the long period of the
Gentile times, whether dating from the subversion of the Jewish
theocracy at the Babylonian captivity (the kingdom having been
never since restored to Israel), or from the last destruction of
Jerusalem under Titus, and extending to the restoration of the
theocracy at the coming of Him "whose right it is"; the different
epochs marked by the 2300, 1335, 1290, and 1260 days, will not be fully
cleared up till the grand consummation; but, meanwhile, our duty and
privilege urge us to investigate them. Some one of the epochs assigned
by many may be right but as yet it is uncertain. The times of the
Gentile monarchies during Israel's seven times punishment, will
probably, in the narrower sense
(Re 11:2),
be succeeded by the much more restricted times of the personal
Antichrist's tyranny in the Holy Land. The long years of papal misrule
may be followed by the short time of the man of sin who shall
concentrate in himself all the apostasy, persecution, and evil of the
various forerunning Antichrists, Antiochus, Mohammed, Popery, just
before Christ's advent. His time shall be THE
RECAPITULATION and open consummation of the "mystery of
iniquity" so long leavening the world. Witnessing churches may be
followed by witnessing individuals, the former occupying the longer,
the latter, the shorter period. The three and a half (1260 days
being three and a half years of three hundred sixty days each, during
which the two witnesses prophesy in sackcloth) is the sacred number
seven halved, implying the Antichristian world-power's time is
broken at best; it answers to the three and a half years' period
in which Christ witnessed for the truth, and the Jews, His own people,
disowned Him, and the God-opposed world power crucified Him (compare
Note, see on
Da 9:27).
The three and a half, in a word, marks the time in which the earthly
rules over the heavenly kingdom. It was the duration of Antiochus'
treading down of the temple and persecution of faithful Israelites. The
resurrection of the witnesses after three and a half days, answers to
Christ's resurrection after three days. The world power's times never
reach the sacred fulness of seven times three hundred sixty, that is,
2520, though they approach to it in 2300
(Da 8:14).
The forty-two months answer to Israel's forty-two sojournings
(Nu 33:1-50)
in the wilderness, as contrasted with the sabbatic rest in Canaan:
reminding the Church that here, in the world wilderness, she cannot
look for her sabbatic rest. Also, three and a half years was the period
of the heaven being shut up, and of consequent famine, in Elias' time.
Thus, three and a half represented to the Church the idea of toil,
pilgrimage, and persecution.
3. I will give power--There is no "power" in the
Greek, so that "give" must mean "give commission," or
some such word.
my two witnesses--Greek, "the two witnesses of
me." The article implies that the two were well known at least to John.
prophesy--preach under the inspiration of the Spirit, denouncing
judgments against the apostate. They are described by symbol as "the
two olive trees" and "the two candlesticks," or lamp-stands,
"standing before the God of the earth." The reference is to
Zec 4:3, 12,
where two individuals are meant, Joshua and Zerubbabel, who
ministered to the Jewish Church, just as the two olive trees emptied
the oil out of themselves into the bowl of the candlestick. So in the
final apostasy God will raise up two inspired witnesses to minister
encouragement to the afflicted, though sealed, remnant. As two
candlesticks are mentioned in
Re 11:4,
but only one in
Zec 4:2,
I think the twofold Church, Jewish and Gentile, may be meant by the two
candlesticks represented by the two witnesses: just as in
Re 7:1-8
there are described first the sealed of Israel, then those of all
nations. But see on
Re 11:4.
The actions of the two witnesses are just those of Moses when
witnessing for God against Pharaoh (the type of Antichrist, the last
and greatest foe of Israel), turning the waters into blood, and
smiting with plagues; and of Elijah (the witness for God
in an almost universal apostasy of Israel, a remnant of seven thousand,
however, being left, as the 144,000 sealed,
Re 7:1-8)
causing fire by his word to devour the enemy, and
shutting heaven, so that it rained not for three years and six
months, the very time (1260 days) during which the two witnesses
prophesy. Moreover, the words "witness" and "prophesy" are usually
applied to individuals, not to abstractions (compare
Ps 52:8).
DE BURGH thinks Elijah and
Moses will again appear, as
Mal 4:5, 6
seems to imply (compare
Mt 17:11;
Ac 3:21).
Moses and Elijah appeared with Christ at the Transfiguration, which
foreshadowed His coming millennial kingdom. As to Moses, compare
De 34:5, 6;
Jude 9.
Elias' genius and mode of procedure bears the same relation to the
"second" coming of Christ, that John the Baptist's did to the first
coming [BENGEL]. Many of the early Church thought
the two witnesses to be Enoch and Elijah. This would avoid the
difficulty of the dying a second time, for these have never yet
died; but, perhaps, shall be the witnesses slain. Still, the turning
the water to blood, and the plagues
(Re 11:6),
apply best to "Moses (compare
Re 15:3,
the song of Moses"). The transfiguration glory of Moses and
Elias was not their permanent resurrection-state, which shall not be
till Christ shall come to glorify His saints, for He has precedence
before all in rising. An objection to this interpretation is that those
blessed departed servants of God would have to submit to death
(Re 11:7, 8),
and this in Moses' case a second time, which
Heb 9:27
denies. See on
Zec 4:11, 12,
on the two witnesses as answering to "the two olive trees." The two
olive trees are channels of the oil feeding the Church, and symbols of
peace. The Holy Spirit is the oil in them. Christ's witnesses, in
remarkable times of the Church's history, have generally appeared in
pairs: as Moses and Aaron, the inspired civil and religious
authorities; Caleb and Joshua; Ezekiel the priest and Daniel the
prophet; Zerubbabel and Joshua.
in sackcloth--the garment of prophets, especially when calling
people to mortification of their sins, and to repentance. Their very
exterior aspect accorded with their teachings: so Elijah, and John who
came in His spirit and power. The sackcloth of the witnesses is
a catch word linking this episode under the sixth trumpet, with the
sun black as sackcloth (in righteous retribution on the
apostates who rejected God's witnesses) under the sixth seal
(Re 6:12).
4. standing before the God of the earth--A, B, C, Vulgate, Syriac, Coptic, and ANDREAS read "Lord" for "God": so Zec 4:14. Ministering to (Lu 1:19), and as in the sight of Him, who, though now so widely disowned on "earth," is its rightful King, and shall at last be openly recognized as such (Re 11:15). The phrase alludes to Zec 4:10, 14, "the two anointed ones that stand by the Lord of the whole earth." The article "the" marks this allusion. They are "the two candlesticks," not that they are the Church, the one candlestick, but as its representative light-bearers (Greek, "phosteres," Php 2:15), and ministering for its encouragement in a time of apostasy. WORDSWORTH'S view is worth consideration, whether it may not constitute a secondary sense: the two witnesses, the olive trees, are THE TWO TESTAMENTS ministering their testimony to the Church of the old dispensation, as well as to that of the new, which explains the two witnesses being called also the two candlesticks (the Old and New Testament churches; the candlestick in Zec 4:2 is but one as there was then but one Testament, and one Church, the Jewish). The Church in both dispensations has no light in herself, but derives it from the Spirit through the witness of the twofold word, the two olive trees: compare Note, see on Re 11:1, which is connected with this, the reed, the Scripture canon, being the measure of the Church: so PRIMASIUS [X, p. 314]: the two witnesses preach in sackcloth, marking the ignominious treatment which the word, like Christ Himself, receives from the world. So the twenty-four elders represent the ministers of the two dispensations by the double twelve. But Re 11:7 proves that primarily the two Testaments cannot be meant; for these shall never be "killed," and never "shall have finished their testimony" till the world is finished.
5. will hurt--Greek, "wishes," or "desires to hurt them."
fire . . . devoureth--(Compare
Jer 5:14; 23:29).
out of their mouth--not literally, but God makes their inspired
denunciations of judgment to come to pass and devour their
enemies.
if any man will hurt them--twice repeated, to mark the
immediate certainty of the accomplishment.
in this manner--so in like manner as he tries to hurt them
(compare
Re 13:10).
Retribution in kind.
6. These . . . power--Greek, "authorized
power."
it rain not--Greek, "huetos brechee," "rain shower
not," literally, "moisten" not (the earth).
smite . . . with all plagues--Greek, "with
(literally, 'in') every plague."
7. finished their testimony--The same verb is used of Paul's
ending his ministry by a violent death.
the beast that ascended out of the bottomless pit--Greek,
"the wild beast . . . the abyss." This beast was not
mentioned before, yet he is introduced as "the beast," because
he had already been described by Daniel
(Da 7:3, 11),
and he is fully so in the subsequent part of the Apocalypse, namely,
Re 13:1; 17:8.
Thus, John at once appropriates the Old Testament prophecies; and also,
viewing his whole subject at a glance, mentions as familiar things
(though not yet so to the reader) objects to be described hereafter by
himself. It is a proof of the unity that pervades all Scripture.
make war against them--alluding to
Da 7:21,
where the same is said of the little horn that sprang up among
the ten horns on the fourth beast.
8. dead bodies--So Vulgate, Syriac, and
ANDREAS. But A, B, C, the oldest manuscripts, and
Coptic read the singular, "dead body." The two fallen in one
cause are considered as one.
the great city--eight times in the Revelation elsewhere
used of BABYLON
(Re 14:8;
16:19; 17:18; 18:10, 16, 18, 19, 21).
In
Re 21:10
(English Version as to the new Jerusalem), the oldest
manuscripts omit "the great" before city, so that it forms no
exception. It must, therefore, have an anticipatory reference to the
mystical Babylon.
which--Greek, "the which," namely, "the city
which."
spiritually--in a spiritual sense.
Sodom--The very term applied by
Isa 1:10
to apostate Jerusalem (compare
Eze 16:48).
Egypt--the nation which the Jews' besetting sin was to lean
upon.
where . . . Lord was crucified--This identifies the
city as Jerusalem, though the Lord was crucified outside of the
city. EUSEBIUS mentions that the scene of
Christ's crucifixion was enclosed within the city by Constantine; so it
will be probably at the time of the slaying of the witnesses. "The
beast [for example, Napoleon and France's efforts] has been long
struggling for a footing in Palestine; after his ascent from the
bottomless pit he struggles much more" [BENGEL].
Some one of the Napoleonic dynasty may obtain that footing, and even be
regarded as Messiah by the Jews, in virtue of his restoring them to
their own land; and so may prove to be the last Antichrist. The
difficulty is, how can Jerusalem be called "the great city," that is,
Babylon? By her becoming the world's capital of idolatrous apostasy,
such as Babylon originally was, and then Rome has been; just as she is
here called also "Sodom and Egypt."
also our--A, B, C, ORIGEN,
ANDREAS, and others read, "also their."
Where their Lord, also, as well as they, was slain. Compare
Re 18:24,
where the blood of ALL slain on
earth is said to be found IN BABYLON, just as in
Mt 23:35,
Jesus saith that, "upon the Jews and JERUSALEM"
(Compare
Mt 23:37, 38)
shall "come ALL the righteous blood shed upon
earth"; whence it follows Jerusalem shall be the last capital of the
world apostasy, and so receive the last and worst visitation of all the
judgments ever inflicted on the apostate world, the earnest of which
was given in the Roman destruction of Jerusalem. In the wider sense, in
the Church-historical period, the Church being the sanctuary, all
outside of it is the world, the great city, wherein all the martyrdoms
of saints have taken place. Babylon marks its idolatry,
Egypt its tyranny, Sodom its desperate corruption,
Jerusalem its pretensions to sanctity on the ground of spiritual
privileges, while all the while it is the murderer of Christ in the
person of His members. All which is true of Rome. So VITRINGA. But in the more definite sense,
Jerusalem is regarded, even in Hebrews
(Heb 13:12-14),
as the world city which believers were then to go forth from, in order
to "seek one to come."
9. they--rather, "(some) of the peoples."
people--Greek, "peoples."
kindreds--Greek, "tribes"; all save the elect (whence it
is not said, The peoples . . . but [some] of the
peoples . . . , or, some of the peoples
. . . may refer to those of the nations
. . ., who at the time shall hold possession of Palestine
and Jerusalem).
shall see--So Vulgate, Syriac, and Coptic. But A,
B, C, and ANDREAS, the present, "see," or rather
(Greek, "blepousin"), "look upon." The prophetic present.
dead bodies--So Vulgate, Syriac, and
ANDREAS. But A, B, C, and Coptic, singular,
as in
Re 11:8,
"dead body." Three and a half days answer to the three and a half years
(see on
Re 11:2, 3),
the half of seven, the full and perfect number.
shall not suffer--so B, Syriac, Coptic, and
ANDREAS. But A, C, and Vulgate read, "do
not suffer."
in graves--so Vulgate and PRIMASIUS.
But B, C, Syriac, Coptic, and ANDREAS,
singular; translate, "into a sepulchre," literally, "a
monument." Accordingly, in righteous retribution in kind, the
flesh of the Antichristian hosts is not buried, but given to all
the fowls in mid-heaven to eat
(Re 19:17, 18, 21).
10. they that dwell upon . . . earth--those who belong
to the earth, as its citizens, not to heaven
(Re 3:10; 8:13; 12:12; 13:8).
shall--so Vulgate, Syriac, and Coptic. But A, B,
and C read the present tense; compare Note, see on
Re 11:9,
on "shall not suffer."
rejoice over them--The Antichristianity of the last days shall
probably be under the name of philosophical enlightenment and
civilization, but really man's deification of himself. Fanaticism shall
lead Antichrist's followers to exult in having at last seemingly
silenced in death their Christian rebukers. Like her Lord, the Church
will have her dark passion week followed by the bright resurrection
morn. It is a curious historical coincidence that, at the fifth Lateran
Council, May 5, 1514, no witness (not even the Moravians who were
summoned) testified for the truth, as HUSS and
JEROME did at Constance; an orator ascended the
tribunal before the representatives of papal Christendom, and said,
"There is no reclaimant, no opponent." LUTHER, on
October 31, 1517, exactly three and a half years afterwards, posted up
his famous theses on the church at Wittenberg. The objection is, the
years are years of three hundred sixty-five, not three hundred sixty,
days, and so two and a half days are deficient; but still the
coincidence is curious; and if this prophecy be allowed other
fulfilments, besides the final and literal one under the last
Antichrist, this may reasonably be regarded as one.
send gifts one to another--as was usual at a joyous festival.
tormented them--namely, with the plagues which they had power to
inflict
(Re 11:5, 6);
also, by their testimony against the earthly.
11. Translate as Greek, "After the three days and
an half."
the Spirit of life--the same which breathed life into
Israel's dry bones,
Eze 37:10, 11
(see on
Eze 37:10, 11),
"Breath came into them." The passage here, as there, is closely
connected with Israel's restoration as a nation to political and
religious life. Compare also concerning the same,
Ho 6:2,
where Ephraim says, "After two days will He revive us; in the third
day He will raise us up, and we shall live in
His sight."
into--so B and Vulgate. But A reads (Greek, "en
autois"), "(so as to be) IN them."
stood upon their feet--the very words in
Eze 37:10,
which proves the allusion to be to Israel's resurrection, in
contrast to "the times of the Gentiles" wherein these "tread under foot
the holy city."
great fear--such as fell on the soldiers guarding Christ's tomb
at His resurrection
(Mt 28:4),
when also there was a great earthquake
(Re 11:2).
saw--Greek, "beheld."
12. they--so A, C, and Vulgate. But B, Coptic,
Syriac, and ANDREAS read, "I heard."
a cloud--Greek, "the cloud"; which may be merely the
generic expression for what we are familiar with, as we say "the
clouds." But I prefer taking the article as definitely alluding to
THE cloud which received Jesus at His ascension,
Ac 1:9
(where there is no article, as there is no allusion to a previous
cloud, such as there is here). As they resembled Him in their three and
a half years' witnessing, their three and a half days lying in death
(though not for exactly the same time, nor put in a tomb as He was), so
also in their ascension is the translation and transfiguration of the
sealed of Israel
(Re 7:1-8),
and the elect of all nations, caught up out of the reach of the
Antichristian foe. In
Re 14:14-16,
He is represented as sitting on a white cloud.
their enemies beheld them--and were thus openly convicted by God
for their unbelief and persecution of His servants; unlike Elijah's
ascension formerly, in the sight of friends only. The Church caught up
to meet the Lord in the air, and transfigured in body, is justified by
her Lord before the world, even as the man-child (Jesus) was "caught up
unto God and His throne" from before the dragon standing ready to
devour the woman's child as soon as born.
13. "In that same hour"; literally, "the hour."
great earthquake--answering to the "great earthquake" under the
sixth seal, just at the approach of the Lord
(Re 6:12).
Christ was delivered unto His enemies on the fifth day of the week, and
on the sixth was crucified, and on the sabbath rested; so it is
under the sixth seal and sixth trumpet that the last suffering of the
Church, begun under the fifth seal and trumpet, is to be consummated,
before she enters on her seventh day of eternal sabbath. Six is
the number of the world power's greatest triumph, but at the same time
verges on seven, the divine number, when its utter destruction
takes place. Compare "666" in
Re 13:18,
"the number of the beast."
tenth part of the city fell--that is, of "the great city"
(Re 16:19;
Zec 14:2).
Ten is the number of the world kingdoms
(Re 17:10-12),
and the beast's horns
(Re 13:1),
and the dragon's
(Re 12:3).
Thus, in the Church-historical view, it is hereby implied that one of
the ten apostate world kingdoms fall. But in the narrower view a tenth
of Jerusalem under Antichrist falls. The nine-tenths remain and become
when purified the center of Christ's earthly kingdom.
of men--Greek, "names of men." The men are as accurately
enumerated as if their names were given.
seven thousand--ELLIOTT interprets seven
chiliads or provinces, that is, the seven Dutch United Provinces
lost to the papacy; and "names of men," titles of dignity, duchies,
lordships, &c. Rather, seven thousand combine the two mystical
perfect and comprehensive numbers seven and thousand,
implying the full and complete destruction of the impenitent.
the remnant--consisting of the Israelite inhabitants not slain.
Their conversion forms a blessed contrast to
Re 16:9;
and above,
Re 9:20, 21.
These repenting
(Zec 12:10-14; 13:1),
become in the flesh the loyal subjects of Christ reigning over
the earth with His transfigured saints.
gave glory to the God of heaven--which while apostates, and
worshipping the beast's image, they had not done.
God of heaven--The apostates of the last days, in pretended
scientific enlightenment, recognize no heavenly power, but only
the natural forces in the earth which come under their observation. His
receiving up into heaven the two witnesses who had power
during their time on earth to shut heaven from raining
(Re 11:6),
constrained His and their enemies who witnessed it, to acknowledge
the God of heaven, to be God of the earth
(Re 11:4).
As in
Re 11:4
He declared Himself to be God of the earth by His two witnesses,
so now He proves Himself to be God of heaven also.
14. The second woe--that under the sixth trumpet
(Re 9:12-21),
including also the prophecy,
Re 11:1-13:
Woe to the world, joy to the faithful, as their redemption draweth
nigh.
the third woe cometh quickly--It is not mentioned in detail for
the present, until first there is given a sketch of the history of the
origination, suffering, and faithfulness of the Church in a time of
apostasy and persecution. Instead of the third woe being detailed, the
grand consummation is summarily noticed, the thanksgiving of the
twenty-four elders in heaven for the establishment of Christ's
kingdom on earth, attended with the destruction of the
destroyers of the earth.
15. sounded--with his trumpet. Evidently "the
LAST trumpet." Six is close to
seven, but does not reach it. The world judgments are complete
in six, but by the fulfilment of seven the world kingdoms
become Christ's. Six is the number of the world given over to
judgment. It is half of twelve, the Church's number, as three
and a half is half of seven, the divine number for completeness.
BENGEL thinks the angel here to have been
Gabriel, which name is compounded of El, GOD, and Geber, MIGHTY MAN
(Re 10:1).
Gabriel therefore appropriately announced to Mary the advent of the
mighty God-man: compare the account of the man-child's
birth which follows
(Re 12:1-6),
to which this forms the transition though the seventh trumpet in time
is subsequent, being the consummation of the historical episode, the
twelfth and thirteen chapters. The seventh trumpet, like the seventh
seal and seventh vial, being the consummation, is accompanied
differently from the preceding six: not the consequences which follow
on earth, but those IN HEAVEN, are set before us,
the great voices and thanksgiving of the twenty-four elders in
heaven, as the half-hour's silence in heaven at the seventh seal,
and the voice out of the temple in heaven, "It is done,"
at the seventh vial. This is parallel to
Da 2:44,
"The God of heaven shall set up a kingdom, which shall
never be destroyed: and the kingdom shall not be left to other people,
but it shall break to pieces all these kingdoms, and it shall
stand for ever." It is the setting up of Heaven's sovereignty
over the earth visibly, which, when invisibly exercised, was rejected
by the earthly rulers heretofore. The distinction of worldly and
spiritual shall then cease. There will be no beast in opposition to the
woman. Poetry, art, science, and social life will be at once worldly
and Christian.
kingdoms--A, B, C, and Vulgate read the singular, "The
kingdom (sovereignty) of (over) the world is our Lord's
and His Christ's." There is no good authority for English
Version reading. The kingdoms of the world give way to
the kingdom of (over) the world exercised by Christ. The
earth-kingdoms are many: His shall be one. The appellation
"Christ," the Anointed, is here, where His kingdom is
mentioned appropriately for the first time used in Revelation. For it
is equivalent to KING. Though priests and prophets
also were anointed, yet this term is peculiarly applied to Him
as King, insomuch that "the Lord's anointed" is His title as
KING, in places where He is distinguished from the
priests. The glorified Son of man shall rule mankind by His
transfigured Church in heaven, and by His people Israel on earth:
Israel shall be the priestly mediator of blessings to the whole world,
realizing them first.
he--not emphatic in the Greek.
shall reign for ever and ever--Greek, "unto the ages of
the ages." Here begins the millennial reign, the consummation of "the
mystery of God"
(Re 10:7).
16. before God--B and Syriac read, "before the throne
of God." But A, C, Vulgate, and Coptic read as
English Version.
seats--Greek, "thrones."
17. thanks--for the answer to our prayers
(Re 6:10, 11)
in destroying them which destroy the earth
(Re 11:18),
thereby preparing the way for setting up the kingdom of Thyself and Thy
saints.
and art to come--omitted in A, B, C, Vulgate, Syriac,
CYPRIAN, and ANDREAS. The
consummation having actually come, they do not address Him as they did
when it was still future, "Thou that art to come." Compare
Re 11:18,
"is come." From the sounding of the seventh trumpet He is to His people
JAH, the ever present Lord,
WHO IS, more peculiarly than
JEHOVAH "who is, was, and is to come."
taken to thee thy great power--"to Thee" is not in the
Greek. Christ takes to Him the kingdom as His own of
right.
18. the nations were angry--alluding to
Ps 99:1,
Septuagint, "The Lord is become King: let the peoples become
angry." Their anger
is combined with alarm
(Ex 15:14;
2Ki 19:28,
"thy rage against Me is come up into Mine ears, I will put My
hook in thy nose," &c.). Translate, as the Greek is the same.
"The nations were angered, and Thy anger is come." How
petty man's impotent anger, standing here side by side with that
of the omnipotent God!
dead . . . be judged--proving that this seventh
trumpet is at the end of all things, when the judgment on Christ's foes
and the reward of His saints, long prayed for by His saints, shall take
place.
the prophets--as, for instance, the two prophesying
witnesses
(Re 11:3),
and those who have showed them kindness for Christ's sake. Jesus shall
come to effect by His presence that which we have looked for long, but
vainly, in His absence, and by other means.
destroy them which destroy the earth--Retribution in kind
(compare
Re 16:6;
Lu 19:27).
See on
Da 7:14-18.
19. A similar solemn conclusion to that of the seventh seal,
Re 8:5,
and to that of the seventh vial,
Re 16:18.
Thus, it appears, the seven seals, the seven trumpets, and the seven
vials, are not consecutive, but parallel, and ending in the same
consummation. They present the unfolding of God's plans for bringing
about the grand end under three different aspects, mutually
complementing each other.
the temple--the sanctuary or Holy place (Greek,
"naos"), not the whole temple (Greek,
"hieron").
opened in heaven--A and C read the article, "the temple of God
"which is" in heaven, was opened."
the ark of his testament--or ". . . His
covenant." As in the first verse the earthly sanctuary was
measured, so here its heavenly antitype is laid open, and the
antitype above to the ark of the covenant in the Holiest Place
below is seen, the pledge of God's faithfulness to His covenant in
saving His people and punishing their and His enemies. Thus this forms
a fit close to the series of trumpet judgments and an introduction to
the episode (the twelfth and thirteen chapters) as to His faithfulness
to His Church. Here first His secret place, the heavenly sanctuary, is
opened for the assurance of His people; and thence proceed His
judgments in their behalf
(Re 14:15, 17; 15:5; 16:17),
which the great company in heaven laud as "true and righteous." This
then is parallel to the scene at the heavenly altar, at the close of
the seals and opening of the trumpets
(Re 8:3),
and at the close of the episode (the twelfth through fifteenth
chapters) and opening of the vials
(Re 15:7, 8).
See on
Re 12:1,
note at the opening of the chapter.
CHAPTER 12
Re 12:1-17. VISION OF THE WOMAN, HER CHILD, AND THE PERSECUTING DRAGON.
1. This episode
(Re 12:1-15:8)
describes in detail the persecution of Israel and the elect
Church by the beast, which had been summarily noticed,
Re 11:7-10,
and the triumph of the faithful, and torment of the unfaithful. So also
the sixteenth through twentieth chapters are the description in detail
of the judgment on the beast, &c., summarily noticed in
Re 11:13, 18.
The beast in
Re 12:3,
&c., is shown not to be alone, but to be the instrument in the hand of
a greater power of darkness, Satan. That this is so, appears from the
time of the eleventh chapter being the period also in which the events
of the twelfth and thirteenth chapters take place, namely, 1260 days
(Re 12:6, 14;
Re 13:5;
compare
Re 11:2, 3).
great--in size and significance.
wonder--Greek, "sign": significant of momentous truths.
in heaven--not merely the sky, but the heaven beyond just
mentioned,
Re 11:19;
compare
Re 12:7-9.
woman clothed with the sun . . . moon under her
feet--the Church, Israel first, and then the Gentile Church;
clothed with Christ, "the Sun of righteousness." "Fair as the moon,
clear as the sun." Clothed with the Sun, the Church is the bearer of
divine supernatural light in the world. So the seven churches (that is,
the Church universal, the woman) are represented as light-bearing
candlesticks
(Re 1:12, 20).
On the other hand, the moon, though standing above the sea and
earth, is altogether connected with them and is an earthly light:
sea, earth, and moon represent the worldly element, in
opposition to the kingdom of God--heaven, the sun. The moon cannot
disperse the darkness and change it into-day: thus she represents the
world religion (heathenism) in relation to the supernatural world. The
Church has the moon, therefore, under her feet; but the stars, as
heavenly lights, on her head. The devil directs his efforts against the
stars, the angels of the churches, about hereafter to shine for ever.
The twelve stars, the crown around her head, are the twelve tribes of
Israel [AUBERLEN]. The allusions to Israel
before accord with this: compare
Re 11:19,
"the temple of God"; "the ark of His testament." The ark lost at the
Babylonian captivity, and never since found, is seen in the "temple of
God opened in heaven," signifying that God now enters again into
covenant with His ancient people. The woman cannot mean, literally, the
virgin mother of Jesus, for she did not flee into the wilderness and
stay there for 1260 days, while the dragon persecuted the remnant of her
seed
(Re 12:13-17)
[DE BURGH]. The sun,
moon, and twelve stars, are emblematical of Jacob, Leah, or
else Rachel, and the twelve patriarchs, that is, the Jewish Church:
secondarily, the Church universal, having under her feet, in due
subordination, the ever changing moon, which shines with a borrowed
light, emblem of the Jewish dispensation, which is now in a
position of inferiority, though supporting the woman, and also of the
changeful things of this world, and having on her head the crown of
twelve stars, the twelve apostles, who, however, are related closely to
Israel's twelve tribes. The Church, in passing over into the Gentile
world, is (1) persecuted; (2) then seduced, as heathenism begins to
react on her. This is the key to the meaning of the symbolic woman,
beast, harlot, and false prophet. Woman and beast form
the same contrast as the Son of man and the beasts in
Daniel. As the Son of man comes from heaven, so the woman is
seen in heaven
(Re 12:1).
The two beasts arise respectively out of the sea (compare
Da 7:3)
and the earth
(Re 13:1, 11):
their origin is not of heaven, but of earth earthy. Daniel beholds the
heavenly Bridegroom coming visibly to reign. John sees the woman, the
Bride, whose calling is heavenly, in the world, before the Lord's
coming again. The characteristic of woman, in contradistinction to man,
is her being subject, the surrendering of herself, her being receptive.
This similarly is man's relation to God, to be subject to, and receive
from, God. All autonomy of the human spirit reverses man's relation to
God. Woman-like receptivity towards God constitutes faith. By it
the individual becomes a child of God; the children
collectively are viewed as "the woman." Humanity, in so far as
it belongs to God, is the woman. Christ, the Son of the woman,
is in
Re 12:5
emphatically called "the MAN-child" (Greek,
"huios arrheen," "male-child"). Though born of a woman, and
under the law for man's sake, He is also the Son of God, and so the
HUSBAND of the Church. As Son of the woman, He is
"'Son of man"; as male-child, He is Son of God, and Husband of
the Church. All who imagine to have life in themselves are severed from
Him, the Source of life, and, standing in their own strength, sink to
the level of senseless beasts. Thus, the woman designates
universally the kingdom of God; the beast, the kingdom of the world.
The woman of whom Jesus was born represents the Old Testament
congregation of God. The woman's travail-pains
(Re 12:2)
represent the Old Testament believers' ardent longings for the promised
Redeemer. Compare the joy at His birth
(Isa 9:6).
As new Jerusalem (called also "the woman," or "wife,"
Re 21:2, 9-12),
with its twelve gates, is the exalted and transfigured Church, so the
woman with the twelve stars is the Church militant.
2. pained--Greek, "tormented" (basanizomene). DE BURGH explains this of the bringing in of the first-begotten into the world AGAIN, when Israel shall at last welcome Him, and when "the man-child shall rule all nations with the rod of iron." But there is a plain contrast between the painful travailing of the woman here, and Christ's second coming to the Jewish Church, the believing remnant of Israel, "Before she travailed she brought forth . . . a MAN-CHILD," that is, almost without travail-pangs, she receives (at His second advent), as if born to her, Messiah and a numerous seed.
3. appeared--"was seen."
wonder--Greek, "semeion," "sign."
red--So A and Vulgate read. But B, C, and Coptic
read, "of fire." In either case, the color of the dragon implies
his fiery rage as a murderer from the beginning. His
representative, the beast, corresponds, having seven heads
and ten horns (the number of horns on the fourth beast of
Da 7:7;
Re 13:1).
But there, ten crowns are on the ten horns (for before
the end, the fourth empire is divided into ten kingdoms); here,
seven crowns (rather, "diadems," Greek,
"diademata," not stephanoi, "wreaths") are upon his
seven heads. In
Da 7:4-7
the Antichristian powers up to Christ's second coming are represented
by four beasts, which have among them seven heads, that is, the
first, second, and fourth beasts having one head each, the
third, four heads. His universal dominion as prince of this
fallen world is implied by the seven diadems (contrast the "many
diadems on Christ's head,"
Re 19:12,
when coming to destroy him and his), the caricature of the seven
Spirits of God. His worldly instruments of power are marked by the
ten horns, ten being the number of the world. It marks his
self-contradictions that he and the beast bear both the number
seven (the divine number) and ten (the world number).
4. drew--Greek, present tense, "draweth," "drags down."
His dragging down the stars with his tail (lashed back
and forward in his fury) implies his persuading to apostatize, like
himself, and to become earthy, those angels and also once eminent human
teachers who had formerly been heavenly (compare
Re 12:1; 1:20;
Isa 14:12).
stood--"stands" [ALFORD]: perfect tense,
Greek, "hesteken."
ready to be delivered--"about to bring forth."
for to devour, &c.--"that when she brought forth, he might
devour her child." So the dragon, represented by his agent Pharaoh (a
name common to all the Egyptian kings, and meaning, according to some,
crocodile, a reptile like the dragon, and made an Egyptian
idol), was ready to devour Israel's males at the birth of the
nation. Antitypically the true Israel, Jesus, when born, was sought
for destruction by Herod, who slew all the males in and around
Bethlehem.
5. man-child--Greek, "a son, a male." On the deep
significance of this term, see on
Re 12:1, 2.
rule--Greek, "poimainein," "tend as a shepherd";
(see on
Re 2:27).
rod of iron--A rod is for long-continued obstinacy until they
submit themselves to obedience [BENGEL]:
Re 2:27;
Ps 2:9,
which passages prove the Lord Jesus to be meant. Any interpretation
which ignores this must be wrong. The male son's birth cannot be
the origin of the Christian state (Christianity triumphing over
heathenism under Constantine), which was not a divine child of the
woman, but had many impure worldly elements. In a secondary sense,
the ascending of the witnesses up to heaven answers to Christ's
own ascension, "caught up unto God, and unto His throne": as also His
ruling the nations with a rod of iron is to be shared in by believers
(Re 2:27).
What took place primarily in the case of the divine Son of the woman,
shall take place also in the case of those who are one with Him, the
sealed of Israel
(Re 7:1-8),
and the elect of all nations, about to be translated and to reign with
Him over the earth at His appearing.
6. woman fled--Mary's flight with Jesus into Egypt is a type of
this.
where she hath--So C reads. But A and B add "there."
a place--that portion of the heathen world which has received
Christianity professedly, namely, mainly the fourth kingdom, having its
seat in the modern Babylon, Rome, implying that all the heathen
world would not be Christianized in the present order of things.
prepared of God--literally, "from God." Not by human
caprice or fear, but by the determined counsel and foreknowledge of
God, the woman, the Church, fled into the wilderness.
they should feed her--Greek, "nourish her." Indefinite
for, "she should be fed." The heathen world, the wilderness,
could not nourish the Church, but only afford her an outward shelter.
Here, as in
Da 4:26,
and elsewhere, the third person plural refers to the heavenly
powers who minister from God nourishment to the Church. As
Israel had its time of first bridal love, on its first going out of
Egypt into the wilderness, so the Christian Church's
wilderness-time of first love was the apostolic age, when
it was separate from the Egypt of this world, having no city
here, but seeking one to come; having only a place in the wilderness
prepared of God
(Re 12:6, 14).
The harlot takes the world city as her own, even as Cain was the first
builder of a city, whereas the believing patriarchs lived in
tents. Then apostate Israel was the harlot and the young
Christian Church the woman; but soon spiritual fornication crept in,
and the Church in the seventeenth chapter is no longer the
woman, but the harlot, the great Babylon, which,
however, has in it hidden the true people of God
(Re 18:4).
The deeper the Church penetrated into heathendom, the more she herself
became heathenish. Instead of overcoming, she was overcome by the world
[AUBERLEN]. Thus, the woman is "the one
inseparable Church of the Old and New Testament" [HENGSTENBERG], the stock of the Christian Church being
Israel (Christ and His apostles being Jews), on which the Gentile
believers have been grafted, and into which Israel, on her
conversion, shall be grafted, as into her own olive tree. During
the whole Church-historic period, or "times of the Gentiles," wherein
"Jerusalem is trodden down of the Gentiles," there is no believing
Jewish Church, and therefore, only the Christian Church can be "the
woman." At the same time there is meant, secondarily, the preservation
of the Jews during this Church-historic period, in order that Israel,
who was once "the woman," and of whom the man-child was born,
may become so again at the close of the Gentile times, and stand at the
head of the two elections, literal Israel, and spiritual Israel, the
Church elected from Jews and Gentiles without distinction.
Eze 20:35, 36,
"I will bring you into the wilderness of the people
(Hebrew, 'peoples'), and there will I plead with you
. . . like as I pleaded with your fathers in the wilderness
of Egypt" (compare Notes, see on
Eze 20:35, 36):
not a wilderness literally and locally, but spiritually a
state of discipline and trial among the Gentile
"peoples," during the long Gentile times, and one finally
consummated in the last time of unparalleled trouble under Antichrist,
in which the sealed remnant
(Re 7:1-8)
who constitute "the woman," are nevertheless preserved "from the face
of the serpent"
(Re 12:14).
thousand two hundred and threescore days--anticipatory of
Re 12:14,
where the persecution which caused her to flee is mentioned in its
place:
Re 13:11-18
gives the details of the persecution. It is most unlikely that the
transition should be made from the birth of Christ to the last
Antichrist, without notice of the long intervening Church-historical
period. Probably the 1260 days, or periods, representing this long
interval, are RECAPITULATED on a shorter scale
analogically during the last Antichrist's short reign. They are
equivalent to three and a half years, which, as half of the divine
number seven, symbolize the seeming victory of the world over
the Church. As they include the whole Gentile times of Jerusalem's
being trodden of the Gentiles, they must be much longer than 1260
years; for, above several centuries more than 1260 years have elapsed
since Jerusalem fell.
7. In
Job 1:6-11; 2:1-6,
Satan appears among the sons of God, presenting himself before God in
heaven, as the accuser of the saints: again in
Zec 3:1, 2.
But at Christ's coming as our Redeemer, he fell from heaven,
especially when Christ suffered, rose again, and ascended to heaven.
When Christ appeared before God as our Advocate, Satan, the accusing
adversary, could no longer appear before God against us, but was
cast out judicially
(Ro 8:33, 34).
He and his angels henceforth range through the air and the earth, after
a time (namely, the interval between the ascension and the second
advent) about to be cast hence also, and bound in hell. That "heaven"
here does not mean merely the air, but the abode of angels, appears
from
Re 12:9, 10, 12;
1Ki 22:19-22.
there was--Greek, "there came to pass," or "arose."
war in heaven--What a seeming contradiction in terms, yet true!
Contrast the blessed result of Christ's triumph,
Lu 19:38,
"peace in heaven."
Col 1:20,
"made peace through the blood of His cross, by Him to reconcile
all things unto Himself; whether . . . things in earth, or
things in heaven."
Michael and his angels . . . the dragon . . .
and his angels--It was fittingly ordered that, as the rebellion
arose from unfaithful angels and their leader, so they should be
encountered and overcome by faithful angels and their archangel, in
heaven. On earth they are fittingly encountered, and shall be overcome,
as represented by the beast and false prophet, by the Son of man and
His armies of human saints
(Re 19:14-21).
The conflict on earth, as in
Da 10:13,
has its correspondent conflict of angels in heaven. Michael is
peculiarly the prince, or presiding angel, of the Jewish nation. The
conflict in heaven, though judicially decided already against Satan
from the time of Christ's resurrection and ascension, receives its
actual completion in the execution of judgment by the angels who cast
out Satan from heaven. From Christ's ascension he has no
standing-ground judicially against the believing elect.
Lu 10:18,
"I beheld (in the earnest of the future full fulfilment given in the
subjection of the demons to the disciples) Satan as lightning fall from
heaven." As Michael fought before with Satan about the body of the
mediator of the old covenant
(Jude 9),
so now the mediator of the new covenant, by offering His sinless body
in sacrifice, arms Michael with power to renew and finish the conflict
by a complete victory. That Satan is not yet actually and
finally cast out of heaven, though the judicial sentence
to that effect received its ratification at Christ's ascension, appears
from
Eph 6:12,
"spiritual wickedness in high (Greek, 'heavenly')
places." This is the primary Church-historical sense here. But, through
Israel's unbelief, Satan has had ground against that, the elect nation,
appearing before God as its accuser. At the eve of its restoration, in
the ulterior sense, his standing-ground in heaven against Israel, too,
shall be taken from him, "the Lord that hath chosen Jerusalem"
rebuking him, and casting him out from heaven actually and for
ever by Michael, the prince, or presiding angel of the Jews. Thus
Zec 3:1-9
is strictly parallel, Joshua, the high priest, being representative of
his nation Israel, and Satan standing at God's fight hand as adversary
to resist Israel's justification. Then, and not till then, fully
(Re 12:10,
"NOW," &c.) shall ALL
things be reconciled unto Christ IN HEAVEN
(Col 1:20),
and there shall be peace in heaven
(Lu 19:38).
against--A, B, and C read, "with."
8. prevailed not--A and Coptic read, "He prevailed
not." But B and C read as English Version.
neither--A, B, and C read, "not even" (Greek,
"oude"): a climax. Not only did they not prevail, but not
even their place was found any more in heaven. There are four
gradations in the ever deeper downfall of Satan: (1) He is deprived of
his heavenly excellency, though having still access to heaven as man's
accuser, up to Christ's first coming. As heaven was not fully yet
opened to man
(Joh 3:13),
so it was not yet shut against Satan and his demons. The Old Testament
dispensation could not overcome him. (2) From Christ, down to the
millennium, he is judicially cast out of heaven as the accuser of the
elect, and shortly before the millennium loses his power against
Israel, and has sentence of expulsion fully executed on him and his by
Michael. His rage on earth is consequently the greater, his power being
concentrated on it, especially towards the end, when "he knoweth that
he hath but a short time"
(Re 12:12).
(3) He is bound during the millennium
(Re 20:1-3).
(4) After having been loosed for a while, he is cast for ever into the
lake of fire.
9. that old serpent--alluding to
Ge 3:1, 4.
Devil--the Greek, for "accuser," or "slanderer."
Satan--the Hebrew for "adversary," especially in a court
of justice. The twofold designation, Greek and Hebrew,
marks the twofold objects of his accusations and temptations, the elect
Gentiles and the elect Jews.
world--Greek, "habitable world."
10. Now--Now that Satan has been cast out of heaven.
Primarily fulfilled in part at Jesus' resurrection and ascension, when
He said
(Mt 28:18),
"All power [Greek, 'exousia,' 'authority,' as here; see
below] is given unto Me in heaven and in earth"; connected with
Re 12:5,
"Her child was caught up unto God and to His throne." In the
ulterior sense, it refers to the eve of Christ's second coming, when
Israel is about to be restored as mother-church of Christendom, Satan,
who had resisted her restoration on the ground of her unworthiness,
having been cast out by the instrumentality of Michael, Israel's
angelic prince (see on
Re 12:7).
Thus this is parallel, and the necessary preliminary to the glorious
event similarly expressed,
Re 11:15,
"The kingdom of this world is become (the very word here, Greek,
'egeneto,' 'is come,' 'hath come to pass') our Lord's and His
Christ's," the result of Israel's resuming her place.
salvation, &c.--Greek, "the salvation (namely,
fully, finally, and victoriously accomplished,
Heb 9:28;
compare
Lu 3:6,
yet future; hence, not till now do the blessed raise the fullest
hallelujah for salvation to the Lamb,
Re 7:10; 19:1)
the power (Greek, 'dunamis'), and the authority
(Greek, 'exousia'; 'legitimate power'; see
above) of His Christ."
accused them before our God day and night--Hence the need that
the oppressed Church, God's own elect (like the widow,
continually coming, so as even to weary the unjust
judge), should cry day and night unto Him.
11. they--emphatic in the Greek. "They" in particular.
They and they alone. They were the persons who overcame.
overcame--
(Ro 8:33, 34, 37; 16:20).
him--
(1Jo 2:14, 15).
It is the same victory (a peculiarly Johannean phrase) over
Satan and the world which the Gospel of John describes in the life of
Jesus, his Epistle in the life of each believer, and his Apocalypse in
the life of the Church.
by, &c.--Greek (dia to haima; accusative, not
genitive case, as English Version would require, compare
Heb 9:12),
"on account of (on the ground of) the blood of the Lamb";
"because of"; on account of and by virtue of its having been shed. Had
that blood not been shed, Satan's accusations would have been
unanswerable; as it is, that blood meets every charge. SCHOTTGEN mentions the Rabbinical tradition that Satan
accuses men all days of the year, except the day of atonement. TITTMANN takes the Greek "dia," as it often
means, out of regard to the blood of the Lamb; this was the
impelling cause which induced them to undertake the contest
for the sake of it; but the view given above is good
Greek, and more in accordance with the general sense of
Scripture.
by the word of their testimony--Greek, "on account of the
word of their testimony." On the ground of their faithful testimony,
even unto death, they are constituted victors. Their testimony evinced
their victory over him by virtue of the blood of the Lamb. Hereby they
confess themselves worshippers of the slain Lamb and overcome the
beast, Satan's representative; an anticipation of
Re 15:2,
"them that had gotten the victory over the beast" (compare
Re 13:15, 16).
unto--Greek, "achri," "even as far as." They
carried their not-love of life as far as even unto death.
12. Therefore--because Satan is cast out of heaven
(Re 12:9).
dwell--literally, "tabernacle." Not only angels and the souls of
the just with God, but also the faithful militant on earth, who already
in spirit tabernacle in heaven, having their home and citizenship
there, rejoice that Satan is cast out of their home.
"Tabernacle" for dwell is used to mark that, though still on the
earth, they in spirit are hidden "in the secret of God's
tabernacle." They belong not to the world, and, therefore, exult
in judgment having been passed on the prince of this world.
the inhabiters of--So ANDREAS reads. But A,
B, and C omit. The words probably, were inserted from
Re 8:13.
is come down--rather as Greek, "catebee," "is
gone down"; John regarding the heaven as his standing-point of
view whence he looks down on the earth.
unto you--earth and sea, with their inhabitants; those
who lean upon, and essentially belong to, the earth (contrast
Joh 3:7,
Margin, with
Joh 3:31; 8:23; 1Jo+4:5">Php 3:19,
end; 1Jo 4:5)
and its sea-like troubled politics. Furious at his expulsion
from heaven, and knowing that his time on earth is short until he shall
be cast down lower, when Christ shall come to set up His kingdom
(Re 20:1, 2),
Satan concentrates all his power to destroy as many souls as he can.
Though no longer able to accuse the elect in heaven, he can tempt and
persecute on earth. The more light becomes victorious, the greater will
be the struggles of the powers of darkness; whence, at the last crisis,
Antichrist will manifest himself with an intensity of iniquity greater
than ever before.
short time--Greek, "kairon," "season":
opportunity for his assaults.
13. Resuming from Re 12:6 the thread of the discourse, which had been interrupted by the episode, Re 12:7-12 (giving in the invisible world the ground of the corresponding conflict between light and darkness in the visible world), this verse accounts for her flight into the wilderness (Re 12:6).
14. were given--by God's determinate appointment, not by human
chances
(Ac 9:11).
two--Greek, "the two wings of the great
eagle." Alluding to
Ex 19:4:
proving that the Old Testament Church, as well as the New Testament
Church, is included in "the woman." All believers are included
(Isa 40:30, 31).
The great eagle is the world power; in
Eze 17:3, 7,
Babylon and Egypt: in early Church history, Rome,
whose standard was the eagle, turned by God's providence from
being hostile into a protector of the Christian Church. As "wings"
express remote parts of the earth, the two wings may here mean
the east and west divisions of the Roman empire.
wilderness--the land of the heathen, the Gentiles: in contrast
to Canaan, the pleasant and glorious land. God dwells in
the glorious land; demons (the rulers of the heathen world,
Re 9:20;
1Co 10:20),
in the wilderness. Hence Babylon is called the desert of the
sea,
Isa 21:1-10
(referred to also in
Re 14:8; 18:2).
Heathendom, in its essential nature, being without God, is a desolate
wilderness. Thus, the woman's flight into the wilderness is the
passing of the kingdom of God from the Jews to be among the Gentiles
(typified by Mary's flight with her child from Judea into Egypt). The
eagle flight is from Egypt into the wilderness. The Egypt meant
is virtually stated
(Re 11:8)
to be Jerusalem, which has become spiritually so by crucifying our
Lord. Out of her the New Testament Church flees, as the Old
Testament Church out of the literal Egypt; and as the true Church
subsequently is called to flee out of Babylon (the woman become an
harlot, that is, the Church become apostate) [AUBERLEN].
her place--the chief seat of the then world empire, Rome. The
Acts of the Apostles describe the passing of the Church from Jerusalem
to Rome. The Roman protection was the eagle wing which often shielded
Paul, the great instrument of this transmigration, and Christianity,
from Jewish opponents who stirred up the heathen mobs. By degrees the
Church had "her place" more and more secure, until, under Constantine,
the empire became Christian. Still, all this Church-historical period
is regarded as a wilderness time, wherein the Church is in part
protected, in part oppressed, by the world power, until just before the
end the enmity of the world power under Satan shall break out against
the Church worse than ever. As Israel was in the wilderness forty
years, and had forty-two stages in her journey, so the Church for
forty-two months, three and a half years or times
[literally, seasons, used for years in Hellenistic
Greek (MOERIS, the Atticist), Greek,
"kairous,"
Da 7:25; 12:7],
or 1260 days
(Re 12:6)
between the overthrow of Jerusalem and the coming again of Christ,
shall be a wilderness sojourner before she reaches her millennial rest
(answering to Canaan of old). It is possible that, besides this
Church-historical fulfilment, there may be also an ulterior and
narrower fulfilment in the restoration of Israel to Palestine,
Antichrist for seven times (short periods analogical to the longer
ones) having power there, for the former three and a half times keeping
covenant with the Jews, then breaking it in the midst of the week, and
the mass of the nation fleeing by a second Exodus into the wilderness,
while a remnant remains in the land exposed to a fearful
persecution (the "144,000 sealed of Israel,"
Re 7:1-8; 14:1,
standing with the Lamb, after the conflict is over, on Mount
Zion: "the first-fruits" of a large company to be gathered to Him)
[DE BURGH]. These
details are very conjectural. In
Da 7:25; 12:7,
the subject, as perhaps here, is the time of Israel's calamity. That
seven times do not necessarily mean seven years, in which each day is a
year, that is, 2520 years, appears from Nebuchadnezzar's seven
times
(Da 4:23),
answering to Antichrist, the beast's duration.
15, 16. flood--Greek, "river" (compare Ex 2:3; Mt 2:20; and especially Ex 14:1-31). The flood, or river, is the stream of Germanic tribes which, pouring on Rome, threatened to destroy Christianity. But the earth helped the woman, by swallowing up the flood. The earth, as contradistinguished from water, is the world consolidated and civilized. The German masses were brought under the influence of Roman civilization and Christianity [AUBERLEN]. Perhaps it includes also, generally, the help given by earthly powers (those least likely, yet led by God's overruling providence to give help) to the Church against persecutions and also heresies, by which she has been at various times assailed.
17. wroth with--Greek, "at."
went--Greek, "went away."
the remnant of her seed--distinct in some sense from the woman
herself. Satan's first effort was to root out the Christian Church, so
that there should be no visible profession of Christianity. Foiled in
this, he wars
(Re 11:7; 13:7)
against the invisible Church, namely, "those who keep the commandments
of God, and have the testimony of Jesus" (A, B, and C omit "Christ").
These are "the remnant," or rest of her seed, as distinguished
from her seed, "the man-child"
(Re 12:5),
on one hand, and from mere professors on the other. The Church, in her
beauty and unity (Israel at the head of Christendom, the whole forming
one perfect Church), is now not manifested, but awaiting the
manifestations of the sons of God at Christ's coming. Unable to
destroy Christianity and the Church as a whole, Satan directs his
enmity against true Christians, the elect remnant: the others he
leaves unmolested.
CHAPTER 13
Re 13:1-18. VISION OF THE BEAST THAT CAME OUT OF THE SEA: THE SECOND BEAST, OUT OF THE EARTH, EXERCISING THE POWER OF THE FIRST BEAST, AND CAUSING THE EARTH TO WORSHIP HIM.
1. I stood--So B, Aleph, and Coptic read. But A,
C, Vulgate, and Syriac, "He stood." Standing on
the sand of the sea, HE gave his power to the beast that
rose out of the sea.
upon the sand of the sea--where the four winds were to be
seen striving upon the great sea
(Da 7:2).
beast--Greek, "wild beast." Man becomes "brutish" when he
severs himself from God, the archetype and true ideal, in whose image
he was first made, which ideal is realized by the man Christ Jesus.
Hence, the world powers seeking their own glory, and not God's, are
represented as beasts; and Nebuchadnezzar, when in
self-deification he forgot that "the Most High ruleth in the kingdom of
men," was driven among the beasts. In
Da 7:4-7
there are four beasts: here the one beast expresses the
sum-total of the God-opposed world power viewed in its universal
development, not restricted to one manifestation alone, as Rome. This
first beast expresses the world power attacking the Church more from
without; the second, which is a revival of, and minister to, the first,
is the world power as the false prophet corrupting and
destroying the Church from within.
out of the sea--
(Da 7:3;
compare Note, see on
Re 8:8);
out of the troubled waves of peoples, multitudes, nations, and
tongues. The earth
(Re 13:11),
on the other hand, means the consolidated, ordered world of nations,
with its culture and learning.
seven heads and ten horns--A, B, and C transpose, "ten horns and
seven heads." The ten horns are now put first (contrast the order,
Re 12:3)
because they are crowned. They shall not be so till the last stage of
the fourth kingdom (the Roman), which shall continue until the fifth
kingdom, Christ's, shall supplant it and destroy it utterly; this last
stage is marked by the ten toes of the two feet of the image in
Da 2:33, 41, 42.
The seven implies the world power setting up itself as God, and
caricaturing the seven Spirits of God; yet its true character as
God-opposed is detected by the number ten accompanying the
seven. Dragon and beast both wear crowns, but the former on the heads,
the latter on the horns
(Re 12:3; 13:1).
Therefore, both heads and horns refer to kingdoms; compare
Re 17:7, 10, 12,
"kings" representing the kingdoms whose heads they are. The
seven kings, as peculiarly powerful--the great powers of the
world--are distinguished from the ten, represented by the horns
(simply called "kings,"
Re 17:12).
In Daniel, the ten mean the last phase of the world power, the
fourth kingdom divided into ten parts. They are connected with
the seventh head
(Re 17:12),
and are as yet future [AUBERLEN]. The mistake of
those who interpret the beast to be Rome exclusively, and the ten
horns to mean kingdoms which have taken the place of Rome in Europe
already, is, the fourth kingdom in the image has TWO legs, representing the eastern as well as the
western empire; the ten toes are not upon the one foot (the west), as
these interpretations require, but on the two (east and west) together,
so that any theory which makes the ten kingdoms belong to the west
alone must err. If the ten kingdoms meant were those which sprung up on
the overthrow of Rome, the ten would be accurately known, whereas
twenty-eight different lists are given by so many interpreters, making
in all sixty-five kingdoms! [TYSO in DE BURGH]. The seven heads are the
seven world monarchies, Egypt, Assyria, Babylon, Persia, Greece, Rome,
the Germanic empire, under the last of which we live [AUBERLEN], and which devolved for a time on Napoleon,
after Francis, emperor of Germany and king of Rome, had resigned the
title in 1806. FABER explains the healing of
the deadly wound to be the revival of the Napoleonic dynasty after
its overthrow at Waterloo. That secular dynasty, in alliance with the
ecclesiastical power, the Papacy
(Re 13:11,
&c.), being "the eighth head," and yet "of the seven"
(Re 17:11),
will temporarily triumph over the saints, until destroyed in Armageddon
(Re 19:17-21).
A Napoleon, in this view, will be the Antichrist, restoring the Jews to
Palestine, and accepted as their Messiah at first, and afterwards
fearfully oppressing them. Antichrist, the summing up and concentration
of all the world evil that preceded, is the eighth, but yet one of the
seven
(Re 17:11).
crowns--Greek, "diadems."
name of blasphemy--So C, Coptic, and
ANDREAS. A, B, and Vulgate read, "names of
blasphemy," namely, a name on each of the heads; blasphemously
arrogating attributes belonging to God alone (compare Note, see
on
Re 17:3).
A characteristic of the little horn in
Da 7:8, 20, 21;
2Th 2:4.
2. leopard . . . bear . . . lion--This beast unites in itself the God-opposed characteristics of the three preceding kingdoms, resembling respectively the leopard, bear, and lion. It rises up out of the sea, as Daniel's four beasts, and has ten horns, as Daniel's fourth beast, and seven heads, as Daniel's four beasts had in all, namely, one on the first, one on the second, four on the third, and one on the fourth. Thus it represents comprehensively in one figure the world power (which in Daniel is represented by four) of all times and places, not merely of one period and one locality, viewed as opposed to God; just as the woman is the Church of all ages. This view is favored also by the fact, that the beast is the vicarious representative of Satan, who similarly has seven heads and ten horns: a general description of his universal power in all ages and places of the world. Satan appears as a serpent, as being the archetype of the beast nature (Re 12:9). "If the seven heads meant merely seven Roman emperors, one cannot understand why they alone should be mentioned in the original image of Satan, whereas it is perfectly intelligible if we suppose them to represent Satan's power on earth viewed collectively" [AUBERLEN].
3. One of--literally, "from among."
wounded . . . healed--twice again repeated
emphatically
(Re 13:12, 14);
compare
Re 17:8, 11,
"the beast that was, and is not, and shall ascend out of the
bottomless pit" (compare
Re 13:11);
the Germanic empire, the seventh head (revived in the eighth),
as yet future in John's time
(Re 17:10).
Contrast the change whereby Nebuchadnezzar, being humbled from his
self-deifying pride, was converted from his beast-like form and
character to MAN'S form and true position towards
God; symbolized by his eagle wings being plucked, and himself
made to stand upon his feet as a man
(Da 7:4).
Here, on the contrary, the beast's head is not changed into a
human head, but receives a deadly wound, that is, the world
kingdom which this head represents does not truly turn to God, but for
a time its God-opposed character remains paralyzed ("as it were slain";
the very words marking the beast's outward resemblance to the Lamb, "as
it were slain," see on
Re 5:6.
Compare also the second beast's resemblance to the Lamb,
Re 13:11).
Though seemingly slain (Greek for "wounded"), it remains
the beast still, to rise again in another form
(Re 13:11).
The first six heads were heathenish, Egypt, Assyria, Babylon, Persia,
Greece, Rome; the new seventh world power (the pagan German hordes
pouring down on Christianized Rome), whereby Satan had hoped to stifle
Christianity
(Re 11:15, 16),
became itself Christianized (answering to the beast's, as it were,
deadly wound: it was slain, and it is not,
Re 17:11).
Its ascent out of the bottomless pit answers to the healing
of its deadly wound
(Re 17:8).
No essential change is noticed in Daniel as effected by Christianity
upon the fourth kingdom; it remains essentially God-opposed to the
last. The beast, healed of its temporary and external
wound, now returns, not only from the sea, but from the
bottomless pit, whence it draws new Antichristian strength of
hell
(Re 13:3, 11, 12, 14;
Re 11:7; 17:8).
Compare the seven evil spirits taken into the temporarily
dispossessed, and the last state worse than the first,
Mt 12:43-45.
A new and worse heathenism breaks in upon the Christianized world, more
devilish than the old one of the first heads of the beast. The latter
was an apostasy only from the general revelation of God in nature and
conscience; but this new one is from God's revelation of love in His
Son. It culminates in Antichrist, the man of sin, the son of perdition
(compare
Re 17:11);
2Th 2:3;
compare
2Ti 3:1-4,
the very characteristics of old heathenism
(Ro 1:29-32)
[AUBERLEN]. More than one wound seems to me to be
meant, for example, that under Constantine (when the pagan worship of
the emperor's image gave way to Christianity), followed by the healing,
when image worship and the other papal errors were introduced into the
Church; again, that at the Reformation, followed by the lethargic
form of godliness without the power, and about to end in the
last great apostasy, which I identify with the second beast
(Re 13:11),
Antichrist, the same seventh world power in another form.
wondered after--followed with wondering gaze.
4. which gave--A, B, C, Vulgate, Syriac, and
ANDREAS read, "because he gave."
power--Greek, "the authority" which it had;
its authority.
Who is like unto the beast?--The very language appropriated to
God,
Ex 15:11
(whence, in the Hebrew, the Maccabees took their name; the
opponents of the Old Testament Antichrist, Antiochus);
Ps 35:10; 71:19; 113:5;
Mic 7:18;
blasphemously
(Re 13:1, 5)
assigned to the beast. It is a parody of the name "Michael" (compare
Re 12:7),
meaning, "Who is like unto God?"
5. blasphemies--So ANDREAS reads. B reads
"blasphemy." A, "blasphemous things" (compare
Da 7:8; 11:25).
power--"authority"; legitimate power (Greek,
"exousia").
to continue--Greek, "poiesai," "to act," or
"work." B reads, "to make war" (compare
Re 13:4).
But A, C, Vulgate, Syriac, and ANDREAS omit
"war."
forty . . . two month--(See on
Re 11:2, 3;
Re 12:6).
6. opened . . . mouth--The usual formula in the case
of a set speech, or series of speeches.
Re 13:6, 7
expand
Re 13:5.
blasphemy--So B and ANDREAS. A and C read
"blasphemies."
and them--So Vulgate, Coptic,
ANDREAS, and PRIMASIUS read.
A and C omit "and": "them that dwell (literally, 'tabernacle') in
heaven," mean not only angels and the departed souls of the righteous,
but believers on earth who have their citizenship in heaven, and whose
true life is hidden from the Antichristian persecutor in the secret
of God's tabernacle. See on
Re 12:12;
Joh 3:7.
7. power--Greek, "authority."
all kindreds . . . tongues . . .
nations--Greek, "every tribe . . . tongue
. . . nation." A, B, C, Vulgate, Syriac,
ANDREAS, and PRIMASIUS add
"and people," after "tribe" or "kindred."
8. all that dwell upon the earth--being of earth earthy; in
contrast to "them that dwell in heaven."
whose names are not written--A, B, C, Syriac, Coptic, and
ANDREAS read singular, "(every one) whose
(Greek, 'hou'; but B, Greek, 'hon,' plural)
name is not written."
Lamb slain from the foundation of the world--The Greek
order of words favors this translation. He was slain in the
Father's eternal counsels: compare
1Pe 1:19, 20,
virtually parallel. The other way of connecting the words is, "Written
from the foundation of the world in the book of life of the Lamb
slain." So in
Re 17:8.
The elect. The former is in the Greek more obvious and simple.
"Whatsoever virtue was in the sacrifices, did operate through Messiah's
death alone. As He was "the Lamb slain from the foundation of the
world," so all atonements ever made were only effectual by His blood"
[BISHOP PEARSON,
Exposition of the Creed].
9. A general exhortation. Christ's own words of monition calling solemn attention.
10. He that leadeth into captivity--A, B, C, and Vulgate
read, "if any one (be) for captivity."
shall go into captivity--Greek present, "goeth into
captivity." Compare
Jer 15:2,
which is alluded to here. Aleph, B, and C read simply, "he goeth
away," and omit "into captivity." But A and Vulgate support the
words.
he that killeth with the sword, must be killed with the
sword--So B and C read. But A reads, "if any (is for) being
(literally, 'to be') killed with the sword." As of old, so now, those
to be persecuted by the beast in various ways, have their trials
severally appointed them by God's fixed counsel. English Version
is quite a different sense, namely, a warning to the persecutors that
they shall be punished with retribution in kind.
Here--"Herein": in bearing their appointed sufferings lies the
patient endurance . . . of the saints. This is to be
the motto and watchword of the elect during the period of the world
kingdom. As the first beast is to be met by patience and
faith
(Re 13:10),
the second beast must be opposed by true wisdom
(Re 13:18).
11. another beast--"the false prophet."
out of the earth--out of society civilized, consolidated, and
ordered, but still, with all its culture, of earth earthy: as
distinguished from "the sea," the troubled agitations of various
peoples out of which the world power and its several kingdoms have
emerged. "The sacerdotal persecuting power, pagan and
Christian; the pagan priesthood making an image of the emperors
which they compelled Christians to worship, and working wonders by
magic and omens; the Romish priesthood, the inheritors of pagan rites,
images, and superstitions, lamb-like in Christian professions,
dragon-like in word and act" [ALFORD, and so the
Spanish Jesuit, LACUNZA, writing under the name
BEN EZRA]. As the first beast
was like the Lamb in being, as it were, wounded to death, so the
second is like the Lamb in having two lamb-like horns (its
essential difference from the Lamb is marked by its having
TWO, but the Lamb SEVEN
horns,
Re 5:6).
The former paganism of the world power, seeming to be wounded to death
by Christianity, revives. In its second beast-form it is Christianized
heathendom ministering to the former, and having earthly culture and
learning to recommend it. The second beast's, or false prophet's rise,
coincides in time with the healing of the beast's deadly wound and its
revival
(Re 13:12-14).
Its manifold character is marked by the Lord
(Mt 24:11, 24),
"Many false prophets shall rise," where He is speaking of the
last days. As the former beast corresponds to the first four beasts of
Daniel, so the second beast, or the false prophet, to the little horn
starting up among the ten horns of the fourth beast. This
Antichristian horn has not only the mouth of blasphemy
(Re 13:5),
but also "the eyes of man"
(Da 7:8):
the former is also in the first beast
(Re 13:1, 5),
but the latter not so. "The eyes of man" symbolize cunning and
intellectual culture, the very characteristic of "the false prophet"
(Re 13:13-15;
Re 16:14).
The first beast is physical and political; the second a spiritual
power, the power of knowledge, ideas (the favorite term in the French
school of politics), and scientific cultivation. Both alike are
beasts, from below, not from above; faithful allies, worldly
Antichristian wisdom standing in the service of the worldly
Antichristian power: the dragon is both lion and serpent: might and
cunning are his armory. The dragon gives his external power to the
first beast
(Re 13:2),
his spirit to the second, so that it speaks as a dragon
(Re 13:11).
The second, arising out of the earth, is in
Re 11:7; 17:8,
said to ascend out of the bottomless pit: its very culture and
world wisdom only intensify its infernal character, the pretense to
superior knowledge and rationalistic philosophy (as in the primeval
temptation,
Ge 3:5, 7,
"their EYES [as here] were opened") veiling the
deification of nature, self, and man. Hence spring Idealism,
Materialism, Deism, Pantheism, Atheism. Antichrist shall be the
culmination. The Papacy's claim to the double power, secular and
spiritual, is a sample and type of the twofold beast, that out of
the sea, and that out of the earth, or bottomless
pit. Antichrist will be the climax, and final form. PRIMASIUS OF ADRUMENTUM, in the
sixth century, says, "He feigns to be a lamb that he may assail the
Lamb--the body of Christ."
12. power--Greek, "authority."
before him--"in his presence"; as ministering to, and upholding
him. "The non-existence of the beast embraces the whole Germanic
Christian period. The healing of the wound and return of the beast is
represented [in regard to its final Antichristian manifestation
though including also, meanwhile, its healing and return under Popery,
which is baptized heathenism] in that principle which, since 1789, has
manifested itself in beast-like outbreaks" [AUBERLEN].
which dwell therein--the earthly-minded. The Church becomes the
harlot: the world's political power, the Antichristian
beast; the world's wisdom and civilization, the false
prophet. Christ's three offices are thus perverted: the first beast
is the false kingship; the harlot, the false priesthood;
the second beast, the false prophet. The beast is the
bodily, the false prophet the intellectual, the harlot
the spiritual power of Antichristianity
[AUBERLEN]. The Old-Testament Church stood
under the power of the beast, the heathen world power: the
Middle-Ages Church under that of the harlot: in modern times
the false prophet predominates. But in the last days all these
God-opposed powers which have succeeded each other shall
co-operate, and raise each other to the most terrible and
intense power of their nature: the false prophet causes men to
worship the beast, and the beast carries the harlot. These three
forms of apostasy are reducible to two: the apostate Church and
the apostate world, pseudo-Christianity and
Antichristianity, the harlot and the beast; for the false
prophet is also a beast; and the two beasts, as different
manifestations of the same beast-like principle, stand in
contradistinction to the harlot, and are finally judged together,
whereas separate judgment falls on the harlot [AUBERLEN].
deadly wound--Greek, "wound of death."
13. wonders--Greek, "signs."
so that--so great that.
maketh fire--Greek, "maketh even fire." This is the very
miracle which the two witnesses perform, and which Elijah long ago had
performed; this the beast from the bottomless pit, or the false
prophet, mimics. Not merely tricks, but miracles of a demoniacal kind,
and by demon aid, like those of the Egyptian magicians, shall be
wrought, most calculated to deceive; wrought "after the working
(Greek, 'energy') of Satan."
14. deceiveth them that dwell on the earth--the earthly-minded,
but not the elect. Even a miracle is not enough to warrant
belief in a professed revelation unless that revelation be in harmony
with God's already revealed will.
by the means of those miracles--rather as Greek,
"on account of (because of; in consequence of) those miracles."
which he had power to do--Greek, "which were given him to
do."
in the sight of the beast--"before him"
(Re 13:12).
which--A, B, and C read, "who"; marking, perhaps, a personal
Antichrist.
had--So B and ANDREAS read. But A, C, and
Vulgate read, "hath."
15. he had power--Greek, "it was given to him."
to give life--Greek, "breath," or "spirit."
image--Nebuchadnezzar set up in Dura a golden image to be
worshipped, probably of himself; for his dream had been interpreted,
"Thou art this head of gold"; the three Hebrews who refused to worship
the image were east into a burning furnace. All this typifies
the last apostasy. PLINY, in his letter to Trajan,
states that he consigned to punishment those Christians who would not
worship the emperor's image with incense and wine. So
JULIAN, the apostate, set up his own image with
the idols of the heathen gods in the Forum, that the Christians in
doing reverence to it, might seem to worship the idols. So
Charlemagne's image was set up for homage; and the Pope adored
the new emperor [DUPIN, vol. 6, p. 126]. Napoleon,
the successor of Charlemagne, designed after he had first lowered the
Pope by removing him to Fontainebleau, then to "make an idol of him"
[Memorial de Sainte Helene]; keeping the Pope near him, he
would, through the Pope's influence, have directed the religious, as
well as the political world. The revived Napoleonic dynasty may, in
some one representative, realize the project, becoming the beast
supported by the false prophet (perhaps some openly infidel supplanter
of the papacy, under a spiritual guise, after the harlot, or apostate
Church, who is distinct from the second beast, has been stripped and
judged by the beast,
Re 17:16);
he then might have an image set up in his honor as a test of secular
and spiritual allegiance.
speak--"False doctrine will give a spiritual, philosophical
appearance to the foolish apotheosis of the creaturely personified by
Antichrist" [AUBERLEN].
JEROME, on Daniel 7, says, Antichrist shall be
"one of the human race in whom the whole of Satan shall dwell bodily."
Rome's speaking images and winking pictures of the Virgin Mary
and the saints are an earnest of the future demoniacal miracles of the
false prophet in making the beast's or Antichrist's image to speak.
16. to receive a mark--literally, "that they should give them a mark"; such a brand as masters stamp on their slaves, and monarchs on their subjects. Soldiers voluntarily punctured their arms with marks of the general under whom they served. Votaries of idols branded themselves with the idol's cipher or symbol. Thus Antiochus Epiphanes branded the Jews with the ivy leaf, the symbol of Bacchus (2 Maccabees 6:7; 3 Maccabees 2:29). Contrast God's seal and name in the foreheads of His servants, Re 7:3; 14:1; 22:4; and Ga 6:17, "I bear in my body the marks of the Lord Jesus," that is, I am His soldier and servant. The mark in the right hand and forehead implies the prostration of bodily and intellectual powers to the beast's domination. "In the forehead by way of profession; in the hand with respect to work and service" [AUGUSTINE].
17. And--So A, B, and Vulgate read. C,
IRENÆUS, 316, Coptic, and
Syriac omit it.
might buy--Greek, "may be able to buy."
the mark, or the name--Greek, "the mark (namely), the
name of the beast." The mark may be, as in the case of the sealing of
the saints in the forehead, not a visible mark, but symbolical of
allegiance. So the sign of the cross in Popery. The Pope's interdict
has often shut out the excommunicate from social and commercial
intercourse. Under the final Antichrist this shall come to pass in its
most violent form.
number of his name--implying that the name has some numerical
meaning.
18. wisdom--the armory against the second beast, as patience
and faith against the first. Spiritual wisdom is needed to
solve the mystery of iniquity, so as not to be beguiled by it.
count . . . for--The "for" implies the possibility of
our calculating or counting the beast's number.
the number of a man--that is, counted as men generally count. So
the phrase is used in
Re 21:17.
The number is the number of a man, not of God; he shall
extol himself above the power of the Godhead, as the
MAN of sin [AQUINAS].
Though it is an imitation of the divine name, it is only human.
six hundred threescore and six--A and Vulgate write the
numbers in full in the Greek. But B writes merely the three
Greek letters standing for numbers, Ch, X, St. "C reads"
616, but IRENÆUS, 328, opposes this and
maintains "666." IRENÆUS, in the second
century, disciple of POLYCARP, John's disciple,
explained this number as contained in the Greek letters of
Lateinos (L being thirty; A, one; T, three hundred; E, five; I,
ten; N, fifty; O, seventy; S, two hundred). The Latin is
peculiarly the language of the Church of Rome in all her official acts;
the forced unity of language in ritual being the counterfeit of the
true unity; the premature and spurious anticipation of the real unity,
only to be realized at Christ's coming, when all the earth shall speak
"one language"
(Zep 3:9).
The last Antichrist may have a close connection with Rome, and so the
name Lateinos (666) may apply to him. The Hebrew letters
of Balaam amount to 666 [BUNSEN]; a type of
the false prophet, whose characteristic, like Balaam's, will be
high spiritual knowledge perverted to Satanic ends. The number
six is the world number; in 666 it occurs in units, tens, and
hundreds. It is next neighbor to the sacred seven, but is
severed from it by an impassable gulf. It is the number of the world
given over to judgment; hence there is a pause between the sixth
and seventh seals, and the sixth and seventh trumpets. The judgments on
the world are complete in six; by the fulfilment of
seven, the kingdoms of the world become Christ's. As
twelve is the number of the Church, so six, its half, symbolizes
the world kingdom broken. The raising of the six to tens and hundreds
(higher powers) indicates that the beast, notwithstanding his
progression to higher powers, can only rise to greater ripeness for
judgment. Thus 666, the judged world power, contrasts with the 144,000
sealed and transfigured ones (the Church number, twelve, squared and
multiplied by one thousand, the number symbolizing the world pervaded
by God; ten, the world number, raised to the power of three the number
of God) [AUBERLEN]. The "mark" (Greek,
"charagma") and "name" are one and the same. The first two
radical letters of Christ (Greek, "Christos"),
Ch and R, are the same as the first two of
charagma, and were the imperial monogram of Christian Rome.
Antichrist, personating Christ, adopts a symbol like, but not agreeing
with, Christ's monogram, Ch, X, St; whereas the radicals in
"Christ" are Ch, R, St. Papal Rome has similarly substituted the
standard of the Keys for the standard of the Cross; so on
the papal coinage (the image of power,
Mt 22:20).
The two first letters of "Christ," Ch, R, represent seven
hundred, the perfect number. The Ch, X, St represent an
imperfect number, a triple falling away (apostasy) from
septenary perfection [WORDSWORTH].
CHAPTER 14
Re 14:1-20. THE LAMB SEEN ON ZION WITH THE 144,000. THEIR SONG. THE GOSPEL PROCLAIMED BEFORE THE END BY ONE ANGEL: THE FALL OF BABYLON, BY ANOTHER: THE DOOM OF THE BEAST WORSHIPPERS, BY A THIRD. THE BLESSEDNESS OF THE DEAD IN THE LORD. THE HARVEST. THE VINTAGE.
In contrast to the beast, false prophet, and apostate Church (Re 13:1-18) and introductory to the announcement of judgments about to descend on them and the world (Re 14:8-11, anticipatory of Re 18:2-6), stand here the redeemed, "the divine kernel of humanity, the positive fruits of the history of the world and the Church" [AUBERLEN]. The fourteenth through sixteenth chapters describe the preparations for the Messianic judgment. As the fourteenth chapter begins with the 144,000 of Israel (compare Re 7:4-8, no longer exposed to trial as then, but now triumphant), so the fifteenth chapter begins with those who have overcome from among the Gentiles (compare Re 15:1-5 with Re 7:9-17); the two classes of elect forming together the whole company of transfigured saints who shall reign with Christ.
1. a--A, B, C, Coptic, and ORIGEN
read, "the."
Lamb . . . on . . . Sion--having left His
position "in the midst of the throne," and now taking His stand on
Sion.
his Father's name--A, B, and C read, "His name and His
Father's name."
in--Greek, "upon." God's and Christ's name here
answers to the seal "upon their foreheads" in
Re 7:3.
As the 144,000 of Israel are "the first-fruits"
(Re 14:4),
so "the harvest"
(Re 14:15)
is the general assembly of Gentile saints to be translated by Christ as
His first act in assuming His kingdom, prior to His judgment
(Re 16:17-21,
the last seven vials) on the Antichristian world, in executing which
His saints shall share. As Noah and Lot were taken seasonably out of
the judgment, but exposed to the trial to the last moment
[DE BURGH], so those who
shall reign with Christ shall first suffer with Him, being delivered
out of the judgments, but not out of the trials. The Jews
are meant by "the saints of the Most High": against them Antichrist
makes war, changing their times and laws; for true Israelites
cannot join in the idolatry of the beast, any more than true
Christians. The common affliction will draw closely together, in
opposing the beast's worship, the Old Testament and New Testament
people of God. Thus the way is paved for Israel's conversion. This last
utter scattering of the holy people's power leads them, under
the Spirit, to seek Messiah, and to cry at His approach, "Blessed is He
that cometh in the name of the Lord."
2. from--Greek, "out of."
voice of many waters--as is the voice of Himself, such also is
the voice of His people.
I heard the voice of harpers--A, B, C, and
ORIGEN read, "the voice which I heard (was) as of
harpers."
3. sung--Greek, "sing."
as it were--So A, C, and Vulgate read. It is "as it were"
a new song; for it is, in truth, as old as God's eternal
purpose. But B, Syriac, Coptic, ORIGEN, and
ANDREAS omit these words.
new song--
(Re 5:9, 10).
The song is that of victory after conflict with the dragon, beast, and
false prophet: never sung before, for such a conflict had never been
fought before; therefore new: till now the kingdom of
Christ on earth had been usurped; they sing the new song in
anticipation of His blood-bought kingdom with His saints.
four beasts--rather, as Greek, "four living creatures."
The harpers and singers evidently include the 144,000: so the parallel
proves
(Re 15:2, 3),
where the same act is attributed to the general company of the
saints, the harvest
(Re 14:15)
from all nations. Not as ALFORD, "the harpers and
song are in heaven, but the 144,000 are on earth."
redeemed--literally, "purchased." Not even the angels can learn
that song, for they know not experimentally what it is to have
"come out of the great tribulation, and washed their robes white in the
blood of the Lamb"
(Re 7:14).
4. virgins--spiritually
(Mt 25:1);
in contrast to the apostate Church, Babylon
(Re 14:8),
spiritually "a harlot"
(Re 17:1-5;
Isa 1:21;
contrast
2Co 11:2;
Eph 5:25-27).
Their not being defiled with women means they were not led
astray from Christian faithfulness by the tempters who jointly
constitute the spiritual "harlot."
follow the Lamb whithersoever he goeth--in glory, being
especially near His person; the fitting reward of their following Him
so fully on earth.
redeemed--"purchased."
being the--rather, "as a first-fruit." Not merely
a "first-fruit" in the sense in which all believers are so, but
Israel's 144,000 elect are the first-fruit, the Jewish and
Gentile elect Church is the harvest; in a further sense, the
whole of the transfigured and translated Church which reigns with
Christ at His coming, is the first-fruit, and the consequent
general ingathering of Israel and the nations, ending in the last
judgment, is the full and final harvest.
5. guile--So ANDREAS in one copy. But A, B,
C, ORIGEN, and ANDREAS in
other copies read, "falsehood." Compare with English Version
reading
Ps 32:2;
Isa 53:9;
Joh 1:47.
for--So B, Syriac, Coptic, ORIGEN,
and ANDREAS read. But A and C omit.
without fault--Greek, "blameless": in respect to the
sincerity of their fidelity to Him. Not absolutely, and in themselves
blameless; but regarded as such on the ground of His
righteousness in whom alone they trusted, and whom they faithfully
served by His Spirit in them. The allusion seems to be to
Ps 15:1, 2.
Compare
Re 14:1,
"stood on Mount Sion."
before the throne of God--A, B, C, Syriac, Coptic,
ORIGEN, and ANDREAS omit
these words. The oldest Vulgate manuscript supports them.
6. Here begins the portion relating to the Gentile world, as the
former portion related to Israel. Before the end the Gospel is
to be preached for a WITNESS unto all
nations: not that all nations shall be converted, but all nations
shall have had the opportunity given them of deciding whether they will
be for, or against, Christ. Those thus preached to are "they
that dwell (so A, Coptic, and Syriac read. But B, C,
ORIGEN, Vulgate, CYPRIAN, 312, read, 'SIT,' compare
Mt 4:16;
Lu 1:79,
having their settled home) on the earth," being of earth earthy:
this last season of grace is given them, if yet they may repent, before
"judgment"
(Re 14:7)
descends: if not, they will be left without excuse, as the world which
resisted the preaching of Noah in the the hundred twenty years "while
the long-suffering of God waited." "So also the prophets gave the
people a last opportunity of repentance before the Babylonian
destruction of Jerusalem, and our Lord and His apostles before the
Roman destruction of the holy city" [AUBERLEN].
The Greek for "unto" (epi, in A and C) means literally,
"upon," or "over," or "in respect to"
(Mr 9:12;
Heb 7:13).
So also "TO every nation" (Greek,
"epi," in A, B, C, Vulgate, Syriac,
ORIGEN, ANDREAS,
CYPRIAN, and PRIMASIUS).
This, perhaps, implies that the Gospel, though diffused over the
globe, shall not come savingly unto any save the elect. The
world is not to be evangelized till Christ shall come: meanwhile, God's
purpose is "to take out of the Gentiles a people for His name," to be
witnesses of the effectual working of His Spirit during the
counter-working of "the mystery of iniquity."
everlasting gospel--the Gospel which announces the glad
tidings of the everlasting kingdom of Christ, about to ensue
immediately after the "judgment" on Antichrist, announced as imminent
in
Re 14:7.
As the former angel "flying through the midst of heaven"
(Re 8:13)
announced "woe," so this angel "flying in the midst of heaven" announced
joy. The three angels making this last proclamation of the Gospel,
the fall of Babylon
(Re 14:8),
the harlot, and the judgment on the beast worshippers
(Re 14:9-11),
the voice from heaven respecting the blessed dead
(Re 14:13),
the vision of the Son of man on the cloud
(Re 14:11),
the harvest
(Re 14:15),
and the vintage
(Re 14:18),
form the compendious summary, amplified in detail in the rest of the
book.
7. Fear God--the forerunner to embracing the love of God
manifested in the Gospel. Repentance accompanies faith.
give glory to him--and not to the beast (compare
Re 13:4;
Jer 13:16).
the hour of his judgment--"The hour" implies the definite
time. "Judgment," not the general judgment, but that up on Babylon,
the beast, and his worshippers
(Re 14:8-12).
worship him that made heaven--not Antichrist (compare
Ac 14:15).
sea . . . fountains--distinguished also in
Re 8:8, 10.
8. another--So Vulgate. But A, B, Syriac, and
ANDREAS add, "a second"; "another, a second
angel."
Babylon--here first mentioned; identical with the harlot,
the apostate Church; distinct from the beast, and judged
separately.
is fallen--anticipation of
Re 18:2.
A, Vulgate, Syriac, and ANDREAS support the
second "is fallen." But B, C, and Coptic omit it.
that great city--A, B, C, Vulgate, Syriac, and
Coptic omit "city." Then translate, "Babylon the great." The
ulterior and exhaustive fulfilment of
Isa 21:9.
because--So ANDREAS. But A, C,
Vulgate, and Syriac read, "which." B and Coptic
omit it. Even reading "which," we must understand it as giving the
reason of her fall.
all nations--A, B and C read, "all the nations."
the wine of the wrath of her fornication--the wine of the
wrath of God, the consequence of her fornication. As she
made the nations drunk with the wine of her fornication, so she herself
shall be made drunk with the wine of God's wrath.
9. A, B, C, and ANDREAS read, "another, a third angel." Compare with this verse Re 13:15, 16.
10. The same--Greek, "he also," as the just and
inevitable retribution.
wine of . . . wrath of God--
(Ps 75:8).
without mixture--whereas wine was so commonly mixed with
water that to mix wine is used in Greek for to pour
out wine; this wine of God's wrath is undiluted;
there is no drop of water to cool its heat. Naught of grace or hope is
blended with it. This terrible threat may well raise us above the fear
of man's threats. This unmixed cup is already mingled and
prepared for Satan and the beast's followers.
indignation--Greek, "orges," "abiding wrath," But
the Greek for "wrath" above (Greek, "thumou") is
boiling indignation, from (Greek, "thuo") a root
meaning "to boil"; this is temporary ebullition of anger; that is
lasting [AMMONIUS], and accompanied with a purpose
of vengeance [ORIGEN on Psalm 2:5].
tormented . . . in the presence of . . .
angels--
(Ps 49:14; 58:10; 139:21;
Isa 66:24).
God's enemies are regarded by the saints as their enemies, and when the
day of probation is past, their mind shall be so entirely one with
God's, that they shall rejoice in witnessing visibly the judicial
vindication of God's righteousness in sinners' punishment.
11. for ever and ever--Greek, "unto ages of ages."
no rest day nor night--Contrast the very different sense in
which the same is said of the four living creatures in heaven, "They
rest not day and night, saying, Holy, holy, holy"; yet they do "rest"
in another sense; they rest from sin and sorrow, weariness and
weakness, trial and temptation
(Re 14:13);
the lost have no rest from sin and Satan, terror, torment, and
remorse.
12. Here, &c.--resumed from
Re 13:10;
see on
Re 13:10.
In the fiery ordeal of persecution which awaits all who will not
worship the beast, the faith and patience of the
followers of God and Jesus shall be put to the test, and proved.
patience--Greek, "hupomene," "patient, persevering
endurance." The second "here" is omitted in A, B, C, Vulgate,
Syriac, Coptic, and PRIMASIUS. Translate,
"Here is the endurance of the saints, who keep," &c.
the faith of Jesus--the faith which has Jesus for its
object.
13. Encouragement to cheer those persecuted under the beast.
Write--to put it on record for ever.
Blessed--in resting from their toils, and, in the case of
the saints just before alluded to as persecuted by the beast, in
resting from persecutions. Their full blessedness is now
"from henceforth," that is, FROM THIS TIME, when
the judgment on the beast and the harvest gatherings of the elect are
imminent. The time so earnestly longed for by former martyrs is now all
but come; the full number of their fellow servants is on the verge of
completion; they have no longer to "rest (the same Greek
as here, anapausis) yet for a little season," their eternal
rest, or cessation from toils
(2Th 1:7;
Greek, "anesis," relaxation after hardships.
Heb 4:9, 10,
sabbatism of rest; and Greek, "catapausis," akin
to the Greek here) is close at hand now. They are
blessed in being about to sit down to the marriage supper of
the Lamb
(Re 19:9),
and in having part in the first resurrection
(Re 20:6),
and in having right to the tree of life
(Re 22:14).
In
Re 14:14-16
follows the explanation of why they are pronounced "blessed" now in
particular, namely, the Son of man on the cloud is just coming
to gather them in as the harvest ripe for garner.
Yea, saith the Spirit--The words of God the Father (the "voice
from heaven") are echoed back and confirmed by the Spirit (speaking in
the Word,
Re 2:7; 22:17;
and in the saints,
2Co 5:5;
1Pe 4:14).
All "God's promises in Christ are yea"
(2Co 1:20).
unto me--omitted in A, B, C, Vulgate, Syriac, and
Coptic.
that they may--The Greek includes also the idea, They are
blessed, in that they SHALL rest from
their toils (so the Greek).
and--So B and ANDREAS read. But A, C,
Vulgate, and Syriac read "for." They rest from their
toils because their time for toil is past; they enter on the
blessed rest because of their faith evinced by their works
which, therefore, "follow WITH (so the
Greek) them." Their works are specified because respect
is had to the coming judgment, wherein every man shall be "judged
according to his works." His works do not go before the believer, nor
even go by his side, but follow him at the same time that they
go with him as a proof that he is Christ's.
14. crown--Greek, "stephanon," "garland" of
victory; not His diadem as a king. The victory is described in
detail,
Re 19:11-21.
one sat--"one sitting," Greek, "cathemenon
homoion," is the reading of A, B, C, Vulgate, and
Coptic.
15. Thrust in--Greek, "Send." The angel does not command
the "Son of man"
(Re 14:14),
but is the mere messenger announcing to the Son the will of God the
Father, in whose hands are kept the times and the seasons.
thy sickle--alluding to
Mr 4:29,
where also it is "sendeth the sickle." The Son sends His
sickle-bearing angel to reap the righteous when fully ripe.
harvest--the harvest crop. By the harvest-reaping the
elect righteous are gathered out; by the vintage the
Antichristian offenders are removed out of the earth, the scene of
Christ's coming kingdom. The Son of man Himself, with a golden crown,
is introduced in the harvest-gathering of the elect, a mere
angel in the vintage
(Re 14:18-20).
is ripe--literally, "is dried." Ripe for glory.
16. thrust in--Greek, "cast."
17. out of the temple . . . in heaven-- (Re 11:19).
18. from the altar--upon which were offered the
incense-accompanied prayers of all saints, which bring down in answer
God's fiery judgment on the Church's foes, the fire being
taken from the altar and cast upon the earth.
fully ripe--Greek, "come to their acme"; ripe for
punishment.
19. "The vine" is what is the subject of judgment because its grapes are not what God looked for considering its careful culture, but "wild grapes" (Isa 5:1-30). The apostate world of Christendom, not the world of heathendom who have not heard of Christ, is the object of judgment. Compare the emblem, Re 19:15; Isa 63:2, 3; Joe 3:13.
20. without the city--Jerusalem. The scene of the blood-shedding
of Christ and His people shall be also the scene of God's vengeance on
the Antichristian foe. Compare the "horsemen,"
Re 9:16, 17.
blood--answering to the red wine. The slaughter of the apostates
is what is here spoken of, not their eternal punishment.
even unto the horse bridles--of the avenging "armies of heaven."
by the space of a thousand . . . six hundred
furlongs--literally, "a thousand six hundred furlongs off"
[W. KELLY]. Sixteen hundred is a square number;
four by four by one hundred. The four quarters, north, south,
east, and west, of the Holy Land, or else of the world (the
completeness and universality of the world-wide destruction being
hereby indicated). It does not exactly answer to the length of
Palestine as given by JEROME, one hundred sixty
Roman miles. BENGEL thinks the valley of Kedron,
between Jerusalem and the Mount of Olives, is meant, the torrent in
that valley being about to be discolored with blood to the extent of
sixteen hundred furlongs. This view accords with Joel's prophecy that
the valley of Jehoshaphat is to be the scene of the overthrow of the
Antichristian foes.
CHAPTER 15
Re 15:1-8. THE LAST SEVEN VIALS OF PLAGUES: SONG OF THE VICTORS OVER THE BEAST.
1. the seven last plagues--Greek, "seven plagues which
are the last."
is filled up--literally, "was finished," or "consummated": the
prophetical past for the future, the future being to God as though it
were past, so sure of accomplishment is His word. This verse is the
summary of the vision that follows: the angels do not actually receive
the vials till
Re 15:7;
but here, in
Re 15:1,
by anticipation they are spoken of as having them. There are no
more plagues after these until the Lord's coming in judgment. The
destruction of Babylon
(Re 18:2)
is the last: then in
Re 19:11-16
He appears.
2. sea of glass--Answering to the molten sea or great brazen
laver before the mercy seat of the earthly temple, for the purification
of the priests; typifying the baptism of water and the Spirit of all
who are made kings and priests unto God.
mingled with fire--answering to the baptism on earth
with fire, that is, fiery trial, as well as with the Holy Ghost,
which Christ's people undergo to purify them, as gold is purified of
its dross in the furnace.
them that had gotten the victory over--Greek, "those
(coming) off from (the conflict with) the beast-conquerors."
over the number of his name--A, B, C, Vulgate, Syriac,
and Coptic omit the words in English Version, "over his
mark." The mark, in fact, is the number of his name which
the faithful refused to receive, and so were victorious over it.
stand on the sea of glass--ALFORD and
DE BURGH explain "on (the
shore of) the sea": at the sea. So the preposition,
Greek, "epi," with the accusative case, is used for
at,
Re 3:20.
It has a pregnant sense: "standing" implies rest, Greek
"epi" with the accusative case implies motion "towards." Thus
the meaning is, Having come TO the sea, and now
standing AT it. In
Mt 14:26,
where Christ walks on the sea, the Greek oldest
manuscripts have the genitive, not the accusative as here. Allusion is
made to the Israelites standing on the shore at the Red Sea,
after having passed victoriously through it, and after the Lord had
destroyed the Egyptian foe (type of Antichrist) in it. Moses and the
Israelites' song of triumph
(Ex 15:1)
has its antitype in the saints' "song of Moses and the Lamb"
(Re 15:3).
Still English Version is consistent with good Greek, and
the sense will then be: As the sea typifies the troubled state out of
which the beast arose, and which is to be no more in the blessed world
to come
(Re 21:1),
so the victorious saints stand on it, having it under their feet
(as the woman had the moon, see on
Re 12:1);
but it is now no longer treacherous wherein the feet sink, but solid
like glass, as it was under the feet of Christ, whose triumph and power
the saints now share. Firmness of footing amidst apparent instability
is thus represented. They can stand, not merely as victorious Israel
at the Red Sea, and as John upon the sand of the shore,
but upon the sea itself, now firm, and reflecting their glory as
glass, their past conflict shedding the brighter luster on their
present triumph. Their happiness is heightened by the retrospect of the
dangers through which they have passed. Thus this corresponds to
Re 7:14, 15.
harps of God--in the hands of these heavenly virgins,
infinitely surpassing the timbrels of Miriam and the Israelitesses.
3. song of Moses . . . and . . . the
Lamb--The New Testament song of the Lamb (that is, the song which
the Lamb shall lead, as being "the Captain of our salvation," just as
Moses was leader of the Israelites, the song in which those who conquer
through Him
[Ro 8:37]
shall join,
Re 12:11)
is the antitype to the triumphant Old Testament song of Moses and the
Israelites at the Red Sea
(Ex 15:1-21).
The Churches of the Old and New Testament are essentially one in their
conflicts and triumphs. The two appear joined in this phrase, as they
are in the twenty-four elders. Similarly,
Isa 12:1-6
foretells the song of the redeemed (Israel foremost) after the second
antitypical exodus and deliverance at the Egyptian Sea. The
passage through the Red Sea under the pillar of cloud was Israel's
baptism, to which the believer's baptism in trials corresponds. The
elect after their trials (especially those arising from the beast)
shall be taken up before the vials of wrath be poured on the beast and
his kingdom. So Noah and his family were taken out of the doomed world
before the deluge; Lot was taken out of Sodom before its destruction;
the Christians escaped by a special interposition of Providence to
Pella before the destruction of Jerusalem. As the pillar of
cloud and fire interposed between Israel and the Egyptian
foe, so that Israel was safely landed on the opposite shore before the
Egyptians were destroyed; so the Lord, coming with clouds and in
flaming fire, shall first catch up His elect people "in the
clouds to meet Him in the air," and then shall with fire destroy the
enemy. The Lamb leads the song in honor of the Father amidst the great
congregation. This is the "new song" mentioned in
Re 14:3.
The singing victors are the 144,000 of Israel, "the first-fruits," and
the general "harvest" of the Gentiles.
servant of God--
(Ex 14:31;
Nu 12:7;
Jos 22:5).
The Lamb is more: He is the SON.
Great and marvellous are thy works, &c.--part of Moses'
last song
(De 32:3, 4).
The vindication of the justice of God that so He may be glorified is
the grand end of God's dealings. Hence His servants again and again
dwell upon this in their praises
(Re 16:7; 19:2;
Pr 16:4;
Jer 10:10;
Da 4:37).
Especially at the judgment
(Ps 50:1-6; 145:17).
saints--There is no manuscript authority for this. A, B,
Coptic, and CYPRIAN read, "of the NATIONS." C reads "of the ages," and so Vulgate
and Syriac. The point at issue in the Lord's controversy with
the earth is, whether He, or Satan's minion, the beast, is "the King of
the nations"; here at the eve of the judgments descending on the
kingdom of the beast, the transfigured saints hail Him as "the King of
the nations"
(Eze 21:27).
4. Who shall not--Greek, "Who is there but must fear
Thee?" Compare Moses' song,
Ex 15:14-16,
on the fear which God's judgments strike into the foe.
thee--so Syriac. But A, B, C, Vulgate, and
CYPRIAN reject "thee."
all nations shall come--alluding to
Ps 22:27-31;
compare
Isa 66:23;
Jer 16:19.
The conversion of all nations, therefore, shall be when Christ
shall come, and not till then; and the first moving cause will be
Christ's manifested judgments preparing all hearts for receiving
Christ's mercy. He shall effect by His presence what we have in vain
tried to effect in His absence. The present preaching of the Gospel is
gathering out the elect remnant; meanwhile "the mystery of iniquity" is
at work, and will at last come to its crisis; then shall judgment
descend on the apostates at the harvest-end of this age
(Greek,
Mt 13:39, 40)
when the tares shall be cleared out of the earth, which thenceforward
becomes Messiah's kingdom. The confederacy of 'the apostates against
Christ becomes, when overthrown with fearful judgments, the very means
in God's overruling providence of preparing the nations not joined in
the Antichristian league to submit themselves to Him.
judgments--Greek, "righteousnesses."
are--literally, "were": the prophetical past for the immediate
future.
5. So
Re 11:19;
compare
Re 16:17.
"The tabernacle of the testimony" appropriately here comes to view,
where God's faithfulness in avenging His people with judgments on their
foes is about to be set forth. We need to get a glimpse within the Holy
place to "understand" the secret spring and the end of God's righteous
dealings.
behold--omitted by A, B, C, Syriac, and
ANDREAS. It is supported only by Vulgate,
Coptic, and PRIMASIUS, but no manuscript.
6. having--So B reads. But A and C, read "who have": not that
they had them yet (compare
Re 15:7),
but they are by anticipation described according to their office.
linen--So B reads. But A, C, and Vulgate, "a stone." On
the principle that the harder reading is the one least likely to be an
interpolation, we should read, "a stone pure ('and' is omitted in A, B,
C, and ANDREAS), brilliant" (so the Greek):
probably the diamond. With English Version, compare
Ac 1:10; 10:30.
golden girdles--resembling the Lord in this respect
(Re 1:13).
7. one of the four beasts--Greek, "living creatures." The
presentation of the vials to the angels by one of the living creatures
implies the ministry of the Church as the medium for manifesting to
angels the glories of redemption
(Eph 3:10).
vials--"bowls"; a broad shallow cup or bowl. The breadth of the
vials in their upper part would tend to cause their contents to pour
out all at once, implying the overwhelming suddenness of the
woes.
full of . . . wrath--How sweetly do the vials full
of odors, that is, the incense-perfumed prayers of the saints,
contrast with these!
8. temple . . . filled--
(Isa 6:4);
compare
Ex 40:34;
2Ch 5:14,
as to the earthly temple, of which this is the antitype.
the glory of God and . . . power--then fully
manifested.
no man was able to enter . . . the temple--because of
God's presence in His manifested glory and power during the execution
of these judgments.
CHAPTER 16
Re 16:1-21. THE SEVEN VIALS AND THE CONSEQUENT PLAGUES.
The trumpets shook the world kingdoms in a longer process; the vials destroy with a swift and sudden overthrow the kingdom of "the beast" in particular who had invested himself with the world kingdom. The Hebrews thought the Egyptian plagues to have been inflicted with but an interval of a month between them severally [BENGEL, referring to SEDER OLAM]. As Moses took ashes from an earthly common furnace, so angels, as priestly ministers in the heavenly temple, take holy fire in sacred vials or bowls, from the heavenly altar to pour down (compare Re 8:5). The same heavenly altar which would have kindled the sweet incense of prayer bringing down blessing upon earth, by man's sin kindles the fiery descending curse. Just as the river Nile, which ordinarily is the source of Egypt's fertility, became blood and a curse through Egypt's sin.
1. a great voice--namely, God's. These seven vials (the detailed
expansion of the vintage,
Re 14:18-20)
being called "the last," must belong to the period just when the term
of the beast's power has expired (whence reference is made in them all
to the worshippers of the beast as the objects of the judgments), close
to the end or coming of the Son of man. The first four are
distinguished from the last three, just as in the case of the seven
seals and the seven trumpets. The first four are more general,
affecting the earth, the sea, springs, and the sun, not merely a
portion of these natural bodies, as in the case of the trumpets, but
the whole of them; the last three are more particular, affecting the
throne of the beast, the Euphrates, and the grand consummation. Some of
these particular judgments are set forth in detail in the seventeenth
through twentieth chapters.
out of the temple--B and Syriac omit. But A, C,
Vulgate, and ANDREAS support the words.
the vials--so Syriac and Coptic. But A, B, C,
Vulgate, and ANDREAS read, "the
seven vials."
upon--Greek, "into."
2. went--Greek, "went away."
poured out--So the angel cast fire into the earth previous to
the series of trumpets
(Re 8:5).
upon--so Coptic. But A, B, C, Vulgate, and
Syriac read, "into."
noisome--literally, "evil" (compare
De 28:27, 35).
The very same Greek word is used in the Septuagint as
here, Greek, "helkos." The reason why the sixth Egyptian
plague is the first here is because it was directed against the
Egyptian magicians, Jannes and Jambres, so that they could not stand
before Moses; and so here the plague is sent upon those who in the
beast worship had practiced sorcery. As they submitted to the mark of
the beast, so they must bear the mark of the avenging God. Contrast
Re 7:3;
Eze 9:4, 6.
grievous--distressing to the sufferers.
sore upon the men--antitype to the sixth Egyptian plague.
which had the mark of the beast--Therefore this first vial is
subsequent to the period of the beast's rule.
3. angel--So B and ANDREAS. But A, C, and
Vulgate omit it.
upon--Greek, "into."
became as . . . blood--answering to another Egyptian
plague.
of a dead man--putrefying.
living soul--So B and ANDREAS. But A, C,
and Syriac, "soul of life" (compare
Ge 1:30; 7:21, 22).
in the sea--So B and ANDREAS. But A, C, and
Syriac read, "(as respects) the things in the sea."
4.
(Ex 7:20.)
angel--so Syriac, Coptic, and
ANDREAS. But A, B, C, and Vulgate omit
it.
5. angel of the waters--that is, presiding over the waters.
O Lord--omitted by A, B, C, Vulgate, Syriac, Coptic, and
ANDREAS.
and shalt be--A, B, C, Vulgate, and
ANDREAS for this clause read, "(which art and
wast) holy." The Lord is now no longer He that shall
come, for He is come in vengeance and therefore the third of the
three clauses found in
Re 1:4, 8; 4:8
is here and in
Re 11:17
omitted.
judged thus--literally, "these things." "Thou didst inflict this
judgment."
6.
(Re 11:18,
end; Ge 9:6;
Isa 49:26.)
An anticipation of
Re 18:20, 24;
compare
Re 13:15.
For--A, B, C, and ANDREAS omit.
7. another out of--omitted in A, C, Syriac, and Coptic. Translate then, "I heard the altar [personified] saying." On it the prayers of saints are presented before God: beneath it are the souls of the martyrs crying for vengeance on the foes of God.
8. angel--so Coptic and ANDREAS. But
A, B, C, Vulgate, and Syriac omit it.
upon--not as in
Re 16:2, 3,
"into."
sun--Whereas by the fourth trumpet the sun is darkened
(Re 8:12)
in a third part, here by the fourth vial the sun's bright scorching
power is intensified.
power was given unto him--rather, "unto it," the sun.
men--Greek, "the men," namely, those who had the mark of
the beast
(Re 16:2).
9. men--Greek, "the men."
repented not to give him glory--
(Re 9:20).
Affliction, if it does not melt, hardens the sinner. Compare the better
result on others,
Re 11:13; 14:7; 15:4.
10. angel--omitted by A, B, C, Vulgate, and
Syriac. But Coptic and ANDREAS
support it.
seat--Greek, "throne of the beast": set up in
arrogant mimicry of God's throne; the dragon gave his throne to the
beast
(Re 13:2).
darkness--parallel to the Egyptian plague of darkness, Pharaoh
being the type of Antichrist (compare Notes, see on
Re 15:2, 3;
compare the fifth trumpet,
Re 9:2).
gnawed their tongues for pain--Greek, "owing to
the pain" occasioned by the previous plagues, rendered more
appalling by the darkness. Or, as "gnashing of teeth" is one of the
accompaniments of hell, so this "gnawing of their tongues" is through
rage at the baffling of their hopes and the overthrow of their kingdom.
They meditate revenge and are unable to effect it; hence their frenzy
[GROTIUS]. Those in anguish, mental and bodily,
bite their lips and tongues.
11. sores--This shows that each fresh plague was accompanied
with the continuance of the preceding plagues: there was an
accumulation, not a mere succession, of plagues.
repented not--(Compare
Re 16:9).
12. angel--so Coptic and ANDREAS.
A, B, C, Vulgate, and Syriac omit.
kings of the east--Greek, "the kings who are from the
rising of the sun." Reference to the Euphrates similarly occurs
in the sixth trumpet. The drying up of the Euphrates, I think,
is to be taken figuratively, as Babylon itself, which is
situated on it, is undoubtedly so,
Re 17:5.
The waters of the Euphrates (compare
Isa 8:7, 8)
are spiritual Babylon's, that is, the apostate Church's (of which Rome
is the chief, though not exclusive representative) spiritual and
temporal powers. The drying up of the waters of Babylon expresses the
same thing as the ten kings stripping, eating, and burning the whore.
The phrase, "way may be prepared for," is that applied to the Lord's
coming
(Isa 40:3;
Mt 3:3;
Lu 1:76).
He shall come from the East
(Mt 24:27;
Eze 43:2,
"the glory of the God of Israel came from the way of the East"):
not alone, for His elect transfigured saints of Israel and the Gentiles
shall accompany Him, who are "kings and priests unto God"
(Re 1:6).
As the Antichristian ten kings accompany the beast, so the
saints accompany as kings the King of kings to the last
decisive conflict. DE BURGH
and others take it of the Jews, who also were designed to be
a kingdom of priests to God on earth. They shall, doubtless,
become priest-kings in the flesh to the nations in the flesh at His
coming. Abraham from the East (if
Isa 41:2, 8, 9,
refers to him, and not Cyrus) conquering the Chaldean kings is a type
of Israel's victorious restoration to the priest-kingdom. Israel's
exodus after the last Egyptian plagues typifies Israel's restoration
after the spiritual Babylon, the apostate Church, has been smitten.
Israel's promotion to the priest-kingdom after Pharaoh's downfall, and
at the Lord's descent at Sinai to establish the theocracy, typifies the
restored kingdom of Israel at the Lord's more glorious descent, when
Antichrist shall be destroyed utterly. Thus, besides the transfigured
saints, Israel secondarily may be meant by "the kings from the East"
who shall accompany the "King of kings" returning "from the way of the
East" to reign over His ancient people. As to the drying up
again of the waters opposing His people's assuming the kingdom,
compare
Isa 10:26; 11:11, 15;
Zec 10:9-11.
The name Israel
(Ge 32:28)
implies a prince with God. Compare
Mic 4:8
as to the return of the kingdom to Jerusalem.
DURHAM, several centuries ago, interpreted the
drying up of the Euphrates to mean the wasting away of the Turkish
power, which has heretofore held Palestine, and so the way being
prepared for Israel's restoration. But as Babylon refers to the
apostate Church, not to Mohammedanism, the drying up of the Euphrates
(answering to Cyrus' overthrow of literal Babylon by marching into it
through the dry channel of the Euphrates) must answer to the draining
off of the apostate Church's resources, the Roman and Greek corrupt
Church having been heretofore one of the greatest barriers by its
idolatries and persecutions in the way of Israel's restoration and
conversion. The kings of the earth who are earthly
(Re 16:14),
stand in contrast to the kings from the East who are
heavenly.
13. unclean spirits like frogs--the antitype to the plague of
frogs sent on Egypt. The presence of the "unclean spirit" in the land
(Palestine) is foretold,
Zec 13:2,
in connection with idolatrous prophets. Beginning with
infidelity as to Jesus Christ's coming in the flesh, men shall end in
the grossest idolatry of the beast, the incarnation of all that is
self-deifying and God-opposed in the world powers of all ages; having
rejected Him that came in the Father's name, they shall worship one
that comes in his own, though really the devil's representative; as
frogs croak by night in marshes and quagmires, so these unclean spirits
in the darkness of error teach lies amidst the mire of filthy lusts.
They talk of liberty, but it is not Gospel liberty, but license
for lust. There being three, as also seven, in the
description of the last and worst state of the Jewish nation, implies a
parody of the two divine numbers, three of the Trinity, and
seven of the Holy Spirit
(Re 1:4).
Some observe that three frogs were the original arms of France,
a country which has been the center of infidelity, socialism, and false
spiritualism. A and B read, "as it were frogs," instead of
"like frogs," which is not supported by manuscripts. The unclean
spirit out of the mouth of the dragon symbolizes the proud
infidelity which opposes God and Christ. That out of the beast's
mouth is the spirit of the world, which in the politics of men, whether
lawless democracy or despotism, sets man above God. That out of the
mouth of the false prophet is lying spiritualism and religious
delusion, which shall take the place of the harlot when she shall have
been destroyed.
the dragon--Satan, who gives his power and throne
(Re 13:2)
to the beast.
false prophet--distinct from the harlot, the apostate Church (of
which Rome is the chief, though not sole, representative),
Re 17:1-3, 16;
and identical with the second beast,
Re 13:11-15,
as appears by comparing
Re 19:20
with Re 13:13;
ultimately consigned to the lake of fire with the first beast; as is
also the dragon a little later
(Re 20:10).
The dragon, the beast, and the false prophet, "the mystery of
iniquity," form a blasphemous Antitrinity, the counterfeit of "the
mystery of godliness" God manifests in Christ, witnessed to by the
Spirit. The dragon acts the part of God the Father, assigning his
authority to his representative the beast, as the Father assigns His to
the Son. They are accordingly jointly worshipped; compare as to the
Father and Son,
Joh 5:23;
as the ten-horned beast has its ten horns crowned with diadems
(Greek,
Re 13:1),
so Christ has on His head many diadems. While the false prophet,
like the Holy Ghost, speaks not of himself, but tells all men to
worship the beast, and confirms his testimony to the beast by
miracles, as the Holy Ghost attested similarly to Christ's
divine mission.
14. devils--Greek, "demons."
working miracles--Greek, "signs."
go forth unto--or "for," that is, to tempt them to the battle
with Christ.
the kings of the earth and, &c.--A, B, Syriac, and
ANDREAS omit "of the earth and," which clause is
not in any manuscript. Translate, "kings of the whole habitable world,"
who are "of this world," in contrast to "the kings of (from) the East"
(the sun-rising),
Re 16:12,
namely, the saints to whom Christ has appointed a kingdom, and
who are "children of light." God, in permitting Satan's
miracles, as in the case of the Egyptian magicians who were His
instruments in hardening Pharaoh's heart, gives the reprobate up to
judicial delusion preparatory to their destruction. As Aaron's rod was
changed into a serpent, so were those of the Egyptian magicians. Aaron
turned the water into blood; so did the magicians. Aaron brought up
frogs; so did the magicians. With the frogs their power ceased.
So this, or whatever is antitypical to it, will be the last effort of
the dragon, beast, and false prophet.
battle--Greek, "war"; the final conflict for the kingship
of the world described in
Re 19:17-21.
15. The gathering of the world kings with the beast against the
Lamb is the signal for Christ's coming; therefore He here gives the
charge to be watching for His coming and clothed in the garments of
justification and sanctification, so as to be accepted.
thief--
(Mt 24:43;
2Pe 3:10).
they--saints and angels.
shame--literally, "unseemliness" (Greek,
"aschemosunee"): Greek,
1Co 13:5:
a different word from the Greek in
Re 3:18
(Greek, "aischunee").
16. he--rather, "they (the three unclean spirits) gathered them
together." If English Version be retained, "He" will refer to
God who gives them over to the delusion of the three unclean
spirits; or else the sixth angel
(Re 16:12).
Armageddon--Hebrew, "Har," a mountain, and
"Megiddo" in Manasseh in Galilee, the scene of the overthrow of
the Canaanite kings by God's miraculous interposition under Deborah and
Barak; the same as the great plain of Esdraelon. Josiah, too, as the
ally of Babylon, was defeated and slain at Megiddo; and the mourning of
the Jews at the time just before God shall interpose for them against
all the nations confederate against Jerusalem, is compared to the
mourning for Josiah at Megiddo. Megiddo comes from a root,
gadad, "cut off," and means slaughter. Compare
Joe 3:2, 12, 14,
where "the valley of Jehoshaphat" (meaning in Hebrew, "judgment
of God") is mentioned as the scene of God's final vengeance on the
God-opposing foe. Probably some great plain, antitypical to the valleys
of Megiddo and Jehoshaphat, will be the scene.
17. angel--so ANDREAS. But A, B,
Vulgate, and Syriac omit it.
into--so ANDREAS (Greek,
"eis"). But A and B, "upon" (Greek, "epi").
great--so B, Vulgate, Syriac, Coptic, and
ANDREAS. But A omits.
of heaven--so B and ANDREAS But A,
Vulgate, Syriac, and Coptic omit.
It is done--"It is come to pass." God's voice as to the final
consummation, as Jesus' voice on the cross when the work of expiation
was completed, "It is finished."
18. voice . . . thunders . . . lightnings--A
has the order, "lightnings . . . voices . . .
thunders." This is the same close as that of the seven seals and the
seven thunders; but with the difference that they do not merely form
the conclusion, but introduce the consequence, of the last vial,
namely, the utter destruction of Babylon and then of the Antichristian
armies.
earthquake--which is often preceded by a lurid state of air,
such as would result from the vial poured upon it.
men were--so B, Vulgate, Syriac, and
ANDREAS. But A and Coptic read, "A man
was."
so mighty--Greek, "such."
19. the great city--the capital and seat of the apostate Church,
spiritual Babylon (of which Rome is the representative, if one literal
city be meant). The city in
Re 11:8
(see on
Re 11:8),
is probably distinct, namely, Jerusalem under Antichrist (the
beast, who is distinct from the harlot or apostate Church).
In
Re 11:13
only a tenth of Jerusalem falls whereas here the city (Babylon)
"became (Greek) into three parts" by the earthquake.
cities of the nations--other great cities in league with
spiritual Babylon.
great . . . came in remembrance--Greek,
"Babylon the great was remembered"
(Re 18:5).
It is now that the last call to escape from Babylon is given to God's
people in her
(Re 18:4).
fierceness--the boiling over outburst of His wrath
(Greek, "thumou orgees"), compare Note, see on
Re 14:10.
20. Plainly parallel to
Re 6:14-17,
and by anticipation descriptive of the last judgment.
the mountains--rather as Greek, "there were found no
mountains."
21. fell--Greek, "descends."
upon men--Greek, "the men."
and men blasphemed God--not those struck who died, but the rest.
Unlike the result in the case of Jerusalem
(Re 11:13),
where "the remnant . . . affrighted . . . gave
glory to the God of heaven."
was--Greek, "is."
CHAPTER 17
Re 17:1-18. THE HARLOT BABYLON'S GAUD: THE BEAST ON WHICH SHE RIDES, HAVING SEVEN HEADS AND TEN HORNS, SHALL BE THE INSTRUMENT OF JUDGMENT ON HER.
As Re 16:12 stated generally the vial judgment about to be poured on the harlot, Babylon's power, as the seventeenth and eighteen chapters give the same in detail, so the nineteenth chapter gives in detail the judgment on the beast and the false prophet, summarily alluded to in Re 16:13-15, in connection with the Lord's coming.
1. unto me--A, B, Vulgate, Syriac, and Coptic
omit.
many--So A. But B, "the many waters"
(Jer 51:13);
Re 17:15,
below, explains the sense. The whore is the apostate Church, just as
"the woman"
(Re 12:1-6)
is the Church while faithful. Satan having failed by violence,
tries too successfully to seduce her by the allurements of the world;
unlike her Lord, she was overcome by this temptation; hence she is seen
sitting on the scarlet-colored beast, no longer the wife, but
the harlot; no longer Jerusalem, but spiritually Sodom
(Re 11:8).
2. drunk with--Greek, "owing to." It cannot be pagan Rome, but papal Rome, if a particular seat of error be meant, but I incline to think that the judgment (Re 18:2) and the spiritual fornication (Re 18:3), though finding their culmination in Rome, are not restricted to it, but comprise the whole apostate Church, Roman, Greek, and even Protestant, so far as it has been seduced from its "first love" (Re 2:4) to Christ, the heavenly Bridegroom, and given its affections to worldly pomps and idols. The woman (Re 12:1) is the congregation of God in its purity under the Old and New Testament, and appears again as the Bride of the Lamb, the transfigured Church prepared for the marriage feast. The woman, the invisible Church, is latent in the apostate Church, and is the Church militant; the Bride is the Church triumphant.
3. the wilderness--Contrast her in
Re 12:6, 14,
having a place in the wilderness-world, but not a home; a
sojourner here, looking for the city to come. Now, on the contrary, she
is contented to have her portion in this moral wilderness.
upon a scarlet . . . beast--The same as in
Re 13:1,
who there is described as here, "having seven heads and ten horns
(therein betraying that he is representative of the dragon,
Re 12:3),
and upon his heads names (so the oldest manuscripts read) of
blasphemy"; compare also
Re 17:12-14,
below, with
Re 19:19, 20,
and Re 17:13, 14, 16.
Rome, resting on the world power and ruling it by the claim of
supremacy, is the chief, though not the exclusive, representative of
this symbol. As the dragon is fiery-red, so the beast is
blood-red in color; implying its blood-guiltiness, and also
deep-dyed sin. The scarlet is also the symbol of kingly
authority.
full--all over; not merely "on his heads," as in
Re 13:1,
for its opposition to God is now about to develop itself in all its
intensity. Under the harlot's superintendence, the world power puts
forth blasphemous pretensions worse than in pagan days. So the Pope is
placed by the cardinals in God's temple on the altar to sit
there, and the cardinals kiss the feet of the Pope. This
ceremony is called in Romish writers "the adoration." [Historie de
Clerge, Amsterd., 1716; and LETTENBURGH'S
Notitia Curiæ Romanæ, 1683, p. 125; HEIDEGGER, Myst. Bab., 1, 511, 514, 537]; a papal
coin [Numismata Pontificum, Paris, 1679, p. 5] has the
blasphemous legend, "Quem creant, adorant."
Kneeling and kissing are the worship meant by John's word
nine times used in respect to the rival of God (Greek,
"proskunein"). Abomination, too, is the scriptural term
for an idol, or any creature worshipped with the homage due to the
Creator. Still, there is some check on the God-opposed world power
while ridden by the harlot; the consummated Antichrist will be when,
having destroyed her, the beast shall be revealed as the concentration
and incarnation of all the self-deifying God-opposed principles which
have appeared in various forms and degrees heretofore. "The Church has
gained outward recognition by leaning on the world power which in its
turn uses the Church for its own objects; such is the picture here of
Christendom ripe for judgment" [AUBERLEN]. The
seven heads in the view of many are the seven successive forms of
government of Rome: kings, consuls, dictators, decemvirs, military
tribunes, emperors, the German emperors
[WORDSWORTH], of whom Napoleon is the successor
(Re 17:11).
But see the view given, see on
Re 17:9, 10,
which I prefer. The crowns formerly on the ten horns
(Re 13:1)
have now disappeared, perhaps an indication that the ten kingdoms into
which the Germanic-Slavonic world [the old Roman empire,
including the East as well as the West, the two legs of the image with
five toes on each, that is, ten in all] is to be divided, will lose
their monarchical form in the end [AUBERLEN]; but
see
Re 17:12,
which seems to imply crowned kings.
4. The color scarlet, it is remarkable, is that reserved for
popes and cardinals. Paul II made it penal for anyone but cardinals to
wear hats of scarlet; compare Roman Ceremonial [3.5.5]. This
book was compiled several centuries ago by
MARCELLUS, a Romish archbishop, and dedicated to
Leo X. In it are enumerated five different articles of dress of
scarlet color. A vest is mentioned studded with pearls.
The Pope's miter is of gold and precious stones. These
are the very characteristics outwardly which Revelation thrice assigns
to the harlot or Babylon. So Joachim an abbot from Calabria, about
A.D. 1200, when asked by Richard of England, who
had summoned him to Palestine, concerning Antichrist, replied that "he
was born long ago at Rome, and is now exalting himself above all that
is called God." ROGER HOVEDEN
[Annals, 1.2], and elsewhere, wrote, "The harlot arrayed in gold
is the Church of Rome." Whenever and wherever (not in Rome alone) the
Church, instead of being "clothed (as at first,
Re 12:1)
with the sun" of heaven, is arrayed in earthly meretricious gauds,
compromising the truth of God through fear, or flattery, of the world's
power, science, or wealth, she becomes the harlot seated on the beast,
and doomed in righteous retribution to be judged by the beast
(Re 17:16).
Soon, like Rome, and like the Jews of Christ's and the apostles' time
leagued with the heathen Rome, she will then become the persecutor of
the saints
(Re 17:6).
Instead of drinking her Lord's "cup" of suffering, she has "a cup full
of abominations and filthinesses." Rome, in her medals, represents
herself holding a cup with the self-condemning inscription, "Sedet
super universum." Meanwhile the world power gives up its hostility
and accepts Christianity externally; the beast gives up its God-opposed
character, the woman gives up her divine one. They meet halfway by
mutual concessions; Christianity becomes worldly, the world becomes
Christianized. The gainer is the world; the loser is the Church. The
beast for a time receives a deadly wound
(Re 13:3),
but is not really transfigured; he will return worse than ever
(Re 17:11-14).
The Lord alone by His coming can make the kingdoms of this world become
the kingdoms of our Lord and His Christ. The "purple" is the badge of
empire; even as in mockery it was put on our Lord.
decked--literally, "gilded."
stones--Greek, "stone."
filthiness--A, B, and ANDREAS read, "the
filthy (impure) things."
5. upon . . . forehead . . . name--as
harlots usually had. What a contrast to "HOLINESS TO
THE LORD," inscribed on the miter on
the high priest's forehead!
mystery--implying a spiritual fact heretofore hidden, and
incapable of discovery by mere reason, but now revealed. As the union
of Christ and the Church is a "great mystery" (a spiritual truth of